THE LIBRARY
OF
THE UNIVERSITY
OF CALIFORNIA
LOS ANGELES
dfll
THE OLD FORT AT BOONESBOROUGH
tlFESTIMES
boone.
ifiOONE'SJDIAN TOILETTE.p«.BL
LIFE ANI> TIMES
COLONEL DANIEL BOONE
COMPRISING
pston) of % (barfn Settlement of ^cntucto,
Br CECIL B. HARTLEY.
TO WHICH IS ADOKD,
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY COMPLETE,
AS DICTATED TO JOHN FILSOX, AND PUBLISHED IN 1784.
ILLUSTRATED WITH ENGRAVINGS,
FROM
OBIGINAL DRAWINGS, BY G. Q. WHITE AND OTHER EMINENT ARTIST&
PHILADELPHIA:
G. G. E V A N S. P D 1$ LIS FIB R,
No. 439 CHESTNUT STREET,
13G0.
Entered accordiug to Act of Congress, in the year 18.59, by
O . 0 . EVANS,
In the Clerk's Office of the District Court of the United States, <o and for the
Eastern District of Pennsylvania.
PREFACE.
The subject of the following biography, the
C
w celebrated Colonel Daniel Boone, is one of the
£ most remarkable men which this country has
■^ produced. His character is marked with origi-
*• nality, and his actions were important and influ-
m
™ ential in one of the most interesting periods of
o
z:
our history — that of the early settlement of
o Kentucky. Boone is generally acknowledged as
o the founder of that State. His having explored
o
it alone to a considerable extent ; his leading
G3
3 the earliest bands of settlers : his founding
Boonesborough, the necleus of the future State ;
his having defended this and other stations sue-
(3)
447270 '
4 PREFACE.
cessfully against the attacks of the Indians ; and
the prominent part which he took in military
affairs at this period of distress and peril, cer-
tainty render nis claims to the distinguished
honor of founding Kentucky very strong.
But Boone, personally, reaped Aery little
benefit from his patriotic and disinterested ex-
ertions. The lands which he had first cultivated
and defended, were taken from him by the
chicanery of the law; other lands granted to
him by the Spanish government were lost by his
inattention to legal forms ; and in Ids old age he
was without an acre of land which he could
call his own. A few years before his death a
small tract, such as any other settler in Missouri
was entitled to, was granted him by Congress.
But he has left to his numerous posterity a
nobler inheritance— that of an imperishable fame
in the annals of his country!
CONTENTS
CHAPTER I.
PAGB
The family of Daniel Boone — His grandfather emigrates to
America, and settles in Bucks County, Pennsylvania —
Family of Daniel Boone's father — Account of Exeter, the
birth-place of Boone — Birth of Daniel Boone — Religion of
his family — Boone's boyhood — Goes to school — Anecdote
— Summary termination of his schooling 18
CHAPTER II.
Removal of Boone's father and family to North Carolina —
Location on the Yadkin River — Character of the country
and the people — Byron's description of the Backwoodsmen
— Daniel Boone marries Rebecca Bryan — His farmer life
in North Carolina — State of the country — Political troubles
foreshadowed — Illegal fees and taxes — Probable effect of
this state of things on Boone's mind — Signs of movement.. 23
CHAPTER III.
The Seven Years' War — Cherokee War — Period of Boone'a
first long Excursion to, the West — Extract from Wheeler's
History of Tennessee — Indian accounts of the Western
country — Indian traders— Their Reports — Western travel-
ers— Doherty — Adair— Proceedings of the traders — Hun-
ters—Scotch traders — Hunters accompany the traders to
\\xe We.:4 — Their reports concerning the country — Other
(5)
0 CONTENTS.
FAOB
adventurers — Dr. Walker's expedition— Settlements in
South-western Virginia — Indian hostilities — Pendleton
purchase — Dr. Walker's second expedition — Planting
company of Walker and others — Boone travels with them
— Curious monument left by him 29
CHAPTER IV.
Political and social condition of North Carolina — Taxes —
Lawsuits — Ostentation and extravagance of foreigners
and government officers — Oppression of the people— Mur-
murs— Open resistance — The Regulators— Willingness of
Daniel Boone and others to migrate, and their reasons —
John Finley's expedition to the West — His report to
Boone — He determines to join Finley in his next hunting
tour — New company formed, with Boone for leader — Prep-
arations for starting — The party sets out — Travels for a
month through the wilderness — First sight of Kentucky
— Forming a camp — Hunting buffaloes and other game —
Capture of Boone and Stuart by the Indians— Prudent
dissimulation— Escape from the Indians — Return to the
old camp— Their companions lost — Boone and Stuart
renew their hunting 43
CHAPTER V.
Arrival of Squire Boone and a companion at the camp of
Daniel Boone— Joyful meeting — News from home, and
hunting resumed— Daniel Boone and Stuart surprised by
the Indians — Stuart killed— Escape of Boone, and his re-
turn to camp — Squire Boone's companion lost in the
woods — Residence of Daniel Boone and Squire Boone in
the wilderness— Squire returns to North Carolina, obtains
a fresh supply of ammunition, and again rejoins his
brother at the old camp — Daniel Boone's own account of
this remarkable period of his life — His return to North
Carolina — His determination to settle in Kentucky — Other
Western adventurers — Ihe Long hunters — Washington in
Kentucky— Bullitt's party— Floyd's party— Thompson's
survey— First settlement of Tennessee - 57
CONTENTS. 7
CHAPTER VI.
PAClff
Daniel Boone remains two years in North Carolina after his
return from the West — He prepares to emigrate to Ken-
tucky— Character of the early settlers to Kentucky — The
first class, hunters — The second class, small farmers — The
third class, men of wealth and government officers 71
CHAPTER VII.
Daniel Boone sets out for Kentucky with his family and his
brother, Squire Boone — Is joined by five families and forty
men at Powell's Valley — The party is attacked by Indians,
and Daniel Boone's oldest son is killed — The party return
to the settlements on Clinch River — Boone, at the request
of Governor Dunmore, goes to the West and conducts a
party of surveyors to Virginia — Boone receives the com-
mand of three garrisons and the commission of Captain —
He takes a part in the Dunmore war — Battle of Point
Pleasant and termination of the war 81
CHAPTER VIII.
The militia discharged — Captain Boone returns to his family
— Henderson's company — Various companies of emigrants
to Kentucky — Bounty lands — Harrod's party builds the
first log-cabin erected in Kentucky, and founds Harrods-
burg — Proceedings of Henderson's company — Agency of
Captain Boone — He leads a company to open a road to
Kentucky River — Conflicts with the Indians — Captain
Boone founds Boonesborough— His own account of this
expedition — His letter to Henderson— Account of Colonel
Henderson and the Transylvania Company — Failure of
the scheme — Probability of Boone having been several
years in the service of Henderson 91
HAPTER IX.
Description of the Old Fort at Boonesborough — Usual
methods of fortifications against the Indians — Arrival of
CONTENTS.
FAOE
iuore settlers at Boonesborougli— Captain Boone -eturns
to the Clinch River to bring out his family— He enlists
new emigrants and starts for Kentucky— Reinforced by a
large party at Powel's Valley— Arrival at Boonesborougli
—Arrival of many new settlers at Boonesborougli and Har-
rod's settlement— Arrival of Kenton, Floyd, the McAfees,
and other distinguished persons— Arrival of Colonel
Richard Callaway 102
CHAPTER X.
Disturbed state of the country in 1775— Breaking out of
the Revolutionary war — Exposed situation of the Ken-
tucky settlements — Hostility of the Indians excited by
the British — First political convention in the West — Cap-
ture of Boone's daughter and the daughters of Colonel
Callaway by the Indians — Their rescue by a party led
by Boone and Callaway — Increased caution of the col-
onists at Boonesborough — Alarm and desertion of the
Colonies in the West by land speculators and other ad-
venturers— A reinforcement of forty-five men from North
Carolina arrive at Boonesborough — Indian attack on
Boonesborough in April — Another attack in July — Attack
on Logan's Fort, and siege — Attack on Harrodsburg 108
CHAPTER XI.
Arrival of George Rogers Clark in Kentucky — Anecdote of
his conversation with Ray — Clark and Jones chosen as
delegates for the Colonies to the Virginia Legislature —
Clark's important services in obtaining a political organi-
zation for Kentucky, and an abundant supply of gun-
powder from the government of Virginia — Great labor
and difficulty in bringing the powder to Harrodstown —
Clark's expedition against Kaskaskias — Surprise and cap-
ture of their fort — Perilous and difficult inarch to Vin-
ceunes— Surprise and capture of that place— Extension of
the Virginian settlements— Erection of Fort Jefferson.... 117
CONTENTS. 9
CHAPTER XII.
PAIS
Scarcity of salt at Boonesborough — Boone goes to Blue
Licks to make salt, and is captured by the Indians — Taken
to Ckilicothe — Affects contentment, and decives the
ludians — Taken to Detroit — Kindness of the British offi-
cers to him — Returns to Chilicothe — Adopted into an In-
dian family — Ceremonies of adoption — Boone sees a large
force of Indians destined to attack Boonesborough —
Escapes, and gives the alarm, and strengthens the fortifi-
cations at Boonesborough — News of delay by the Indians
on account of Boone's escape — Boone goes on an expedi-
tion to the Scioto — Has a fight with a party of Indians —
Returns to Boonesborough, which is immediately besieged
by Captain Duquesne with five hundred Indians — Sum-
mons to surrender — Time gained — Attack commenced —
Brave defense — Mines and countermines — Siege raised —
Boone brings his family once more back to Boonesborough,
and resumes farming 128
CHAPTER XIII.
Captain Boone tried by court-martial — Honorably acquitted
and promoted — Loses a large sum of money — His losses
by law-suits and disputes about land — Defeat of Colonel
Rogers's party — Colonel Bowman's expedition to Chili-
cothe— Arrival near the town — Colonel Logan attacks the
town— Ordered by Colonel Bowman to retreat — Failure of
the expedition — Consequences to Bowman and to Logan.. 141
CHAPTER XIV.
. evasion of Kentucky by Captain Byrd's party — He captures
the garrisons at Ruddle's Station and Martin's Fort — Col-
onel Clark's invasion of the Indian country — He ravages
the Indian towns — Adventure of Alexander McConnell —
Skirmish at Pickaway — Result of the expedition — Boone
goes to the Blue Licks with his brother — Attacked by the
Indians — Boone's brother killed — Boone promoted to the
152
10 CONTENTS.
rank of Lieutenant Colonel— Clark's galley— Squire
Boone's Station removed to Bear's Creek— Attack by the
Indians— Colonel Floyd's defeat— Affair of the McAfees-
Attack on McAfee's Station repelled— Fort Jefferson
evacuated— Attack on Montgomery Station— Rescue by
General Logan
CHAPTER XV.
News of Cornwallis's surrender— Its effects— Captain Estill's
defeat— Grand army of Indians raised for the conquest of
Kentucky— Simon Girty's speech— Attack on Hoy's Sta-
tion—Investment of Bryant's Station — Expedient of the
besieged to obtain water— Grand attack on the fort — Re-
pulse— Regular siege commenced — Messengers sent to
Lexington — Reinforcements obtained — Arrival near the
fort— Ambushed and attacked — They enter the fort —
Narrow escape of Girty — He proposes a capitulation — Par-
ley—Reynolds' answer to Girty — The siege raised — Retreat
of the Indians HO
CHAPTER XVI.
Arrival of Reinforcements at Bryant's Station — Colonel
Daniel Boone, his son and brother among them— Colonels
Trigg, Todd, and others — Consultation — Apprehensions
of Boone and others — Arrival at the Blue Licks — Rash
conduct of Major McGary — Battle of Blue Licks — Israel
Boone, Colonels Todd and Trigg, and Majors Harland and
McBride killed — Retreat of the whites — Colonel Boone
nearly surrounded by Indians — Bravery of Netherland —
Noble conduct of Reynolds — The fugitives meet Colonel
Logan with his. party — Return to the field of battle-
Logan returns to Bryant's Station 189
CHAPTER XVII.
The Indians return home from the Blue Licks — They attack
the settlements in Jefferson County — Affair at Simpson's
CONTENTS. 11
PAOB
Creek — General Clark's expedition to the Indian country
— Colonel Boone joins it — Its effect — Attack of the Indians
on the Crab Orchard settlement — Rumor of intended in-
vasion by the Cberokees — Difficulties about the treaty
with Great Britain — Hostilities of the Indians generally
stimulated by renegade whites — Simon Girty — Causes of
his hatred of the whites — Girty insulted by General Lewis
— Joins the Indians at the battle of Point Pleasant — Story
of his rescuing Simon Kenton — Crawford's expedition,
and the burning of Crawford — Close of Girty 's career 204
CHAPTER XVIII.
Season of repose — Colonel Boone buys land — Builds a log
house and goes to farming — Kentucky organized on a new
basis — Colonel Boone surprised by Indians — Escapes —
Manners and customs of the settlers — The autumn hunt
— The house-warming 236
CHAPTER XIX.
Condition of the early settlers as it respects the mechanic
arts — Throwing the tomahawk — Athletic sports — Dancing
— Shooting at marks — Scarcity of Iron — Costume — Dwell-
ings — Furniture — Employments — The women — Their
character — Diet — Indian corn 252
CHAPTER XX.
Indian hostilities resumed — Expedition of Davis, Caffre, and
McClure — Attack on Captain Ward's boat — Affair near
Scagg's Creek — Growth of Kentucky — Population — Trade
— General Logan calls a meeting at Danville — Convention
called — Separation from Virginia proposed — Virginia con
gents — Kentucky admitted as an independent State of tho
Union — Indian hostilities — Expedition and death of Col
onel Christian — Expedition of General Clark — Expedition
of General Logan — Success of Captain Hardin — Defeat of
Hargrove — Exploits of Simon Kenton — Affairs at the Elk-
horn settlements — Treaty — Harman's expedition 275
12 CONTENTS.
CHAPTER XXI.
PAQ8
Colonel Boone meets with the loss of all his land in Ken-
tucky, and emigrates to Virginia — Resides on the Ken-
hawa, near Point Pleasant — Emigrates to Missouri — Is
appointed commandant of a district — Mr. Audubon's nar-
rative of a night passed with Boone 307
CHAPTER XXII.
Colonel Boone receives a large grant of land from the Span-
ish Government of Upper Louisiana — He loses it — Sketch
of the history of Missouri — Colonel Boone's hunting — He
pays his debts by the sale of furs — Taken sick m his
hunting camp — Colonel Boone applies to Congress to re-
cover his land — The Legislature of Kentucky supports
his claim — Death of Mrs. Boone — Results of the applica-
tion to Congress — Occupations of his declining years —
Mr. Harding paints his portrait 319
CHAPTER XXIII.
Last illness, and death of Colonel Boone — His funeral-
Account of his family — His remains and those of his wife
removed from Missouri, and reinterred in the new ceme-
tery in Frankfort, Kentucky — Character of Colonel Boone. 330
LIFE AND TIMES
OF
COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
CHAPTER I.
The family of Daniel Boone — His grandfather emigrates to
America, and settles in Bucks County, Pennsylvania — Family
of Daniel Boone's father — Account of Exeter, the birth-place
of Boone — Birth of Daniel Boone — Religion of his family —
Boone's boyhood — Goes to School — Anecdote — Summary ter-
mination of his schooling.
The immediate ancestors and hear relations of the
American Boone family, resided at Bradwinch, about
eight miles from Exeter, England. George Boone,
the grandfather of Daniel, emigrated to America, and
,i -rivod, with Mary his wife, at Philadelphia, on the
1 ';'.! of October, 1717. They brought with them,
(13)
14 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
eleven children, two daughters and nine sons. The
names of three of the sons have come down to us,
John, James, and Squire. The last of these, Squire
Boone, was the father of Daniel.
George Boone, immediately after his arrival in
America, purchased a large tract of land in what is
now Bucks County, which he settled, and called it
Exeter, after the city near which he was born. The
records distinguish it only as the township of Exeter,
without any county. He purchased also various other
tracts in Maryland and Virginia; and our tradition
says, among others, the ground on which Georgetown,
District of Columbia, now stands, and that he laid the
town out, and gave it his own name. His sons John
and James lived and died on the Exeter purchase*
Daniel Boone's father, Squire Boone, had seven
sons and four daughters, viz. : James,f Samuel, Jona-
than, Daniel, George, Squire, Edward, Sarah, Eliza-
beth, Mary, and Hannah.
Exeter Township is situated in Bucks County,
* "Pittsburg Gazette," quoted by Peck.
f The eldest, James, was killed by tbe Indians in 1773, and
bis son Israel was killed at tbe battle of Blue Licks, August
19th, 1782.
HIS BIRTH-PLACE. 15
Pennsylvania, and now has a population of over two
thousand. Here Daniel Boone was born, on the 11th
of February, 1735*
The maiden name of Boone's mother was Sarah
Morgan. Some dispute has arisen respecting the re-
ligious persuasion of the Boone family. It would
appear, on a review of the whole controversy, that
before their removal to this country, the Boones were
Episcopalians ; but during their residence in Pennsyl-
vania they permitted themselves to be considered
Quakers. What sort of a Quaker Daniel Boone him-
self was, will be apparent in the course of our narrative.
Exeter, the native place of Daniel Boone, was at
this period a small frontier settlement, consisting of
log-houses, surrounded with woods, which abounded
with game of various kinds and were occasionally in-
fested with hostile Indians. It is not surprising that
Daniel, passing the period of his boyhood in such a
place, should have acquired at an early age the ac-
* Bogant gives 11th of February, 1735. Peck, February, 1735.
Another account gives 1746 as the year of his birth, and Bucks
County as his birth-place. The family record, in the hand-
writing of Daniel Boone's uncle, James, who was a school-
master, gives the 14th of July, 1732.
16 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
coraplishments of a hunter and woodsman. JJVom a
mere child it was his chief delight to roam in the
woods, to observe the wild haunts of Nature, and
to pursue the wild animals which were then so
abundant.
Of the boyhood of Daniel Boone, one of his biog-
raphers gives the following account. Speaking of the
residence of the family at Exeter, he says :*
"Here they lived for ten years ; and it was during
this time that their son Daniel began to show his pas-
sion for hunting. He was scarcely able to carry a
gun when he was shooting all the squirrels, raccoons,
and even wild-cats (it is said), that he could find in that
region. As he grew older, his courage increased, and
then we find him amusing himself with higher game.
Other lads in the neighborhood were soon taught by
him the use of the rifle, and were then able to join him
in his adventures. On one occasion, they all started
out for a hunt, and, after amusing themselves till it was
almost dark, were returning homeward, when suddenly
a wild cry was heard in the woods. The boys screamed
out, ' A panther ! A panther !' and ran off as fast as
* "Adventures of Daniel Boone, the Kentucky Rifleman." By
the author of "Uncle Philip's Conversations."
BOYHOOD. 17
tliey could. Boone stood firmly, looking around for
tlie animal. It was a panther indeed. His eye lighted
upon him just in the act of springing toward him : in
an instant he leveled his rifle, and shot him through
the heart.
"But this sort of sport was not enough for him. He
seemed resolved to go away from men, and live in the
forests with these animals. One morning he started
off as usual, with his rifle and dog. Night came
on, but Daniel did not return to his home. Another
day and night passed away, and still the boy did not
make his appearance. His parents were now greatly
alarmed. The neighbors joined them in making
search for the lad. After wandering about a great
while, they at length saw smoke rising from a cabin
in the distance. Upon reaching it, they found the
boy. The floor of the cabin was covered with the
skins of such animals as he had slain, and pieces of
meat were roasting before the fire for his supper. Here,
at a distance of three miles from any settlement, he
had built his cabin of sods and branches, and sheltered
himself in the wilderness.
" It was while his father was living on the head-
waters of the Schuylkill that young Boone received,
2
18 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
so far as we know, all his education. Short indeed
were his schoolboy days. It happened that an Irish
schoolmaster strolled into the settlement, and, by the
advice of Mr. Boone and other parents, opened a
school in the neighborhood. It was not then as it is
now. Good school-houses were not scattered over the
land; nor were schoolmasters always able to teach
their pupils. The school-house where the boys of this
settlement went was a log-cabin, built in the midst of
the woods. The schoolmaster was a strange man ;
sometimes good-humored, and then indulging the lads ;
sometimes surly and ill-natured, and then beating
them severely. It was his usual custom, after heariug
the first lessons of the morning, to allow the children
to be out for a half hour at play, during which time
he strolled off to refresh himself from his labors. He
always walked in the same direction, and the boys
thought that after his return, when they were called
in, he was generally more cruel than ever. They
were whipped more severely, and oftentimes with-
out any cause. They observed this, but did not
know the meaning of it One morning young
Boone asked that he might go out, and had scarcely
left the school-room when he saw a squirrel run
AT SCHOOL. 19
Ding over the trunk of a fallen tree. True to his
nature, he instantly gave chase, until at last the
squirrel darted into a bower of vines and branches.
Boone thrust his hand in, and, to his surprise, laid
hold of a bottle of whiskey. This was in the direc-
tion of his master's morning walks, and he thought
now that he understood the secret of much of his
ill-nature. He returned to the school-room ; but,
when they were dismissed for that day, he told some
of the larger boys of his discovery. Their plan was
soon arranged. Early the next morning a bottle of
whiskey, having tartar emetic in it, was placed in the
bower, and the other bottle thrown away. At the
usual hour, the lads were sent out to play, and the
master started on his walk. But their play was to
come afterward ; they longed for the master to return.
At length they were called in, and in a little time saw
the success of their experiment. The master began
to look pale and sick, yet still went on with his work.
Several boys were called up, one after the other, to
recite lessons, and all whipped soundly, whether right
or wrong. At last young Boone was called out to
answer questions in arithmetic. He came forward
with his slate and pencil, and the master began : ' If
20 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
you subtract six from nine, what remains V said he.
' Three, sir,' said Boone. VVery good,' said the mas-
ter ; ' now let us come to fractions. If you take three-
quarters from a whole number, what remains ?' ' The
whole, sir,' answered Boone. ' You blockhead !' cried
the master, beating him ; ' you stupid little fool, how
can you show that ?' ' If I take one bottle of whis-
key,' said Boone, 'and put in its place another in
which I have mixed an emetic, the whole will remain
if nobody drinks it !' The Irishman, dreadfully sick,
was now doubly enraged. He seized Boone, and
commenced beating him ; the children shouted and
roared; the scuffle continued until Boone knocked
the master down upon the floor, and rushed out of the
room. It was a day of freedom now for the lads.
The story soon ran through the neighborhood ; Boone
was rebuked by his parents, but the schoolmaster was
dismissed, and thus ended the boy's education.
Thus freed from school, he now returned more
ardently than ever to his favorite pursuit. His dog
and rifle were his constant companions, and day after
day he started from home, only to roam through the
forests. Hunting seemed to be the only business of
nis life ; and he was never so happy as when at night
TRAINING AS A HUNTER. 21
he came home laden with game. He was au untiring
wanderer."
Perhaps it was not a very serious misfortune foi
Daniel Boone that his school instruction was so scanty,
for, " in another kind of education," says Mr. Peck,*
"not unfrequent in the wilds of the West, he was
an adept. No Indian could poise the rifle, find his
way through the pathless forest, or search out the
retreats of game, more readily than Daniel Boone.
In all that related to Indian sagacity, border life,
or the tactics of the skillful hunter, he excelled. The
successful training of a hunter, or woodsman, is a kind
of education of mental discipline, differing from that
of the school-room, but not less effective in giving
vigor to the mind, quickness of apprehension, and
habits of close observation. Boone was regularly
trained in all that made him a successful backwoods-
man. Indolence and imbecility never produced a
Simon Kenton, a Tecumthe, or a Daniel Boone. To
gain the skill of an accomplished hunter requires tal-
ents, patience, perseverance, sagacity, and habits of
thinking. Amongst other qualifications, knowledge
* " Life of Daniel Boone." By John M. Peck.
22 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
of human nature, and especially of Indian character,
is indispensable to the pioneer of a wilderness. Add
to these, self-possession, self-control, and promptness
in execution. Persons who are unaccustomed to a
frontier residence know not how much, in the preser-
vation of life, and in obtaining subsistence, depends
on such characteristics I"
In the woods surrounding the little settlement of
Exeter, Boone had ample opportunity for perfecting
himself in this species of mental discipline, and of
gaining that physical training of the limbs and mus-
cles so necessary in the pursuits of the active hunter
and pioneer. We have no record of his ever having
encountered the Indians during his residence in Penn-
sylvania. His knowledge of their peculiar modes of
hunting and war was to be attained not less thor-
oughly at a somewhat later period of life.
CHAPTER II.
Removal of Boone's father aud family to North Carolina — Loca-
tion on the Yadkin River — Character of the country and the
people — Byron's description of the backwoodsman — Daniel
Boone marries Rebecca Bryan — His farmer life in North Car-
olina— State of the country — Political troubles foreshadowed —
Illegal fees and taxes — Probable effect of this state of things
on Boone's mind — Signs of movement.
When Daniel Boone was still a youth, his father
emigrated to North Carolina. The precise date of
this removal of the family residence is not known.
Mr. Peck, an excellent authority, says it took place
when Daniel was about eighteen years old. This
would make it about the year 1752.
The new residence of Squire Boone, Daniel's father,
was near Holman's Ford, on the Yadkin River, about
eight miles from Wilkesboro7. The fact of the great
backwoodsman having passed many years of his life
there is still remembered with pride by the inhabitants
of that region. The capital of Watauga County,
which was formed in 1849, is named Boone, in honor
(23)
24 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE
of Daniel Boone. The historian of North Carolina*
is disposed to claim him as a son of the State. He
says : "In North Carolina Daniel Boone was reared.
Here his youthful days were spent ; and here that
bold spirit was trained, which so fearlessly encoun-
tered the perils through which he passed in after life.
His fame is part of her property, and she has inscribed
his name on a town in the region where his youth was
spent."
" The character of Boone is so peculiar," says Mr.
"Wheeler, " that it marks the age in which he lived ;
and his name is celebrated in the verses of the immor-
tal Byron :
" ' Of all men
Who passes for in life and death most lucky,
Of the great names which in our faces stare,
Is Daniel Boone, backwoodsman of Kentucky.
* * # ■*
Crime came not near him — she is not the child
Of Solitude. Health shrank not from him, for
Her home is in the rarely-trodden wild.
* * * #
And tall and strong and swift of foot are they,
Beyond the dwarfing city's pale abortions,
*John II. Wheeler. "Historical Sketches of North Carolina."
MARRIAGE. 2f»
Because their thoughts had never been the prey
Of care or gain ; the green woods were their portions ;
No sinking spirits told them they grew gray,
No fashions made them apes of her distortions.
Simple they were, not savage ; and their rifles,
Though very true, were not yet used for trifles.
Motion was in their days, rest in their slumbers,
And cheerfulness the handmaid of their toil.
Nor yet too many nor too few their numbers ;
Corruption could not make their hearts her soil ;
The lust which stings, the splendor which encumbers,
With the free foresters divide no spoil ;
Serene, not sullen, were the solitudes
"*f this unsighing people of the woods.' "
We quote these beautiful lines, because they so
aptly and forcibly describe the peculiar character of
Boone ; and to a certain extent, as Mr. Wheeler inti-
mates, his character was that of his times and of his
associates.
It was during the residence of the family on the
banks of the Yadkin, that Boone formed the acquaint-
ance of Rebecca Bryan, whom he married* The
* The children by this marriage were nine in number
Sons: James, born in 1756, Israel, Jesse, Daniel, and Nathan.
Daughters: Susan, Jemima, Lavinia, and Rebecca.
The eldest, James, was killed, as will appear in our subs
26 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
marriage appears, by comparison of dates, to have
taken place in the year 1755. " One almost regrets,"
says Mr. Peck, " to spoil so beautiful a romance, as
that which has had such extensive circulation in the
various 'Lives of Boone,' and which represents him
as mistaking the bright eyes of this young lady, in
the dark, for those of a deer ; a mistake that nearly
proved fatal from the unerring rifle of the young
hunter. Yet in truth, we are bound to say, that no
such mistake ever happened. Our backwoods swains
never make such mistakes."
The next five years after his marriage, Daniel
Boone passed in the quiet pursuits of a farmer's life,
varied occasionally by hunting excursions in the
woods. The most quiet and careless* of the citizens
of North Carolina were not unobservant, however,
of the political aspect of the times. During this
period the people, by their representatives in the
Legislature, began that opposition to the Royal au-
thority, which was in after years to signalize North
Carolina as one of the leading Colonies in the Revo-
lutionary struggle.
quent narrative, by the Indians, in 1773 ; and Israel fell in the
bailie of Blue Licks, May 17th, 17S2. In 1846, Nathan, a cap-
tain in the United States service, was the only surviving son.
RESIDES ON THE YADKIN. 27
The ne wry-appointed Royal Governor, Arthur
Dobbs, arrived at Newbern in the autumn of 1754.
" Governor Dobbs's administration of ten years," says
the historian Wheeler, ' was a continued contest be-
tween himself and the Legislature, on matters friv-
olous and unimportant. A high-toned temper for
Royal prerogatives on his part, and an indomitable re-
sistance of the Colonists. * * * * The people
were much oppressed by Lord Grenville's agents.
They seized Corbin, his agent, who lived below
Edenton, and brought him to Enfield, where he was
compelled to give bond and security to produce his
books and disgorge his illegal fees."
This matter of illegal fees was part of a system of
oppression, kindred to the famous Stamp Act — a
system which was destined to grow more and more
intolerable under Governor Tryon's administration,
and to lead to the formation of the famous company
of Regulators, whose resistance of taxation and
tyranny was soon to convulse the whole State.
We are by no means to suppose that Daniel Boone
was an unobservant spectator of what was passing
even at the time we are speaking of, nor that the
doings of the tax-gatherers had nothing to do with
28 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
his subsequent movements. He not only hated op-
pression, but lie hated also strife and disturbance;
and already began to long for a new migration into
che distant woods and quiet intervales, where politics
and the tax-gatherer should not intrude^
The population in his neighborhood was increasing,
and new settlements were being formed along the
Yadkin and its tributary streams, and explorations
were made to the northwest on the banks of the Hol-
ston and Clinch Eivers. The times were already be-
ginning to exhibit symptoms of restlessness and stir
among the people, which was soon to result in the
formation of new States and the settlement of the far
West.
CHAPTEB III.
The Seven Years' War — Cherokee war — Period of Boone's first
long excursions to the West — Extract from Wheeler's History
of Tennessee — Indian accounts of the western country — In-
dian traders — Their reports — Western travelers — Doherty—
Adair — Proceedings of the traders — Hunters — Scotch traders
— Hunters accompany the traders to the West — Their reports
concerning the country — Other adventurers — Dr. Walker's
expedition — Settlements in South-western Virginia — Indian
hostilities — Pendleton purchase — Dr. Walker's second expe-
dition— Hunting company of Walker and others — Boone travels
with them — Curious monument left by him.
The reader will recollect that the period referred
to in the last chapter, comprehended the latter years
of the celebrated Seven Years' War. During the
chief portion of this period, the neighboring Colony
of Virginia suffered all the horrors of Indian war on
its western frontier — horrors from which even the
ability, courage, and patriotism of Washington were
for a long time unable to protect them. The war was
virtually terminated by the campaign of 1759, when
(29)
30 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
Quebec was taken. The next year Canada was ceded
to England ; and a Cherokee war, which had disturbed
the border setters of North Carolina, was terminated.
Daniel Boone's biographers all agree that it was about
this time when he first began to make long excursions
toward the West ; but it is difficult to fix exactly the
date of his first long journey through the woods in
this direction. It is generally dated in 1771 or 1772,
"We now make a quotation from Eamsay's Annals
of Tennessee, which shows, beyond the possibility of
a doubt, that he hunted on the Wataga Kiver in
1760, and renders it probable that he was in the
West at an earlier date. Our readers will excuse
the length of this quotation, as the first part of it
gives so graphic a picture of the hunter and pioneer
life of the times of Daniel Boone, and also shows
what had been done by others in western explora-
tions before Boone's expeditions commenced.
" The Colonists of the Carolinas and of Yirginia
had been steadily advancing to the West, and we have
traced their approaches in the direction of our eastern
boundary,* to the base of the great Apalachian range.
* That is, the eastern boundary of Tennessee, which was then
a part of North Carolina.
DESCRIPTION OF THE WEST. SI
Of the country beyond it, little was positively
known or accurately understood. A wandering In-
dian would imperfectly delineate upon the sand, a
feeble outline of its more prominent physical features
— its magnificent rivers, with their numerous tribu-
taries— its lofty mountains, its dark forests, its ex-
tended plains and its vast extent. A voyage in a
canoe, from the source of the Hogohegee* to the
Wabash, f required for its performance, in their figur-
ative language, 'two paddles, two warriors, three
moons.' The Ohio itself was but a tributary of a still
larger river, of whose source, size and direction, no
intelligible account could be communicated or under-
stood. The Muscle Shoals and the obstructions in
the river above them, were represented as mighty
cataracts and fearful whirlpools, and the Suck, as an
awful vortex. The wild beasts with which the illim-
itable forests abounded, were numbered by pointing
to the leaves upon the trees, or the stars in a cloud-
less sky.
" These glowing descriptions of the West seemed
rather to stimulate than to satisfy the intense curi-
* Holston.
j The Ohio was known many years by this name.
32 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
osity of the approaching settlers. Information more
reliable, and more minute, was, from time to time,
furnished from other sources. In the Atlantic cities,
accounts had been received from French and Spanish
traders, of the unparalleled beauty and fertility of the
western interior. These reports, highly colored and
amplified, were soon received and known upon the
frontier. Besides, persons engaged in the interior
traffic with the south-western Indian tribes had, in
times of peace, penetrated their territories — traded
with and resided amongst the natives — and upon their
return to the white settlements, confirmed what had
been previously reported in favor of the distant
countries they had seen. As early as 1690, Doherty,
a trader from Virginia, had visited the Cherokees
and afterward lived among them a number of years.
In 1730, Adair, from South Carolina, had traveled,
not only through the towns of this tribe, but had ex-
tended his tour to most of the nations south and west
of them. He was not only an enterprising trader
but an intelligent tourist. To his observations upon
the several tribes which he visited, we are indebted
tor most that is known of their earlier history. The}
were published in London in 177o.
INDIAN TRADERS. 33
"In 1740 other traders went among the Cherokees
from Virginia. They employed Mr Vaughan as a
packman, to transport their goods. West of Amelia
County, the country was then thinly inhabited ; the
last hunter's cabin that he saw was on Otter Eiver, a
branch of the Staunton, now in Bedford County, Ya.
The route pursued was along the Great Path to the
centre of the Cherokee nation. The traders and pack-
men generally confined themselves to this path till it
crossed the Little Tennessee River, then spreading
themselves out among the several Cherokee villages
west of the mountain, continued their traffic as. low
down the Great Tennessee as the Indian settlements
upon Occochappo or Bear Creek, below the Muscle
Shoals, and there encountered the competition of
other traders, who were supplied from New Orleans
and Mobile. They returned heavily laden with
peltries, to Charleston, or the more northern markets,
where they were sold at highly remunerating prices.
A hatchet, a pocket looking-glass, a piece of scarlet
cloth, a trinket, and other articles of little value,
which at Williamsburg could be bought for a few
shillings, would command from an Indian hunter on
the Hiwasse or Tennessee peltries amounting in value
3
34 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
to double the number of pounds sterling. Exchanges
were necessarily slow, but the -profits realized from
the operation were immensely large. In times of
peace this traffic attracted the attention of many ad-
venturous traders. It became mutually advantageous
to the Indian not le^s than to the white man. The
trap and the rifle, thus bartered for, procured, in one
day, more game to the Cherokee hunter than his bow
and^ arrow and his dead-fall would have secured
during a month of toilsome hunting. Other advan-
tages resulted from it to the whites. They became
thus acquainted with the great avenues leading through
the hunting grounds and to the occupied country of
the neighboring tribes — an important circumstance in
the condition of either war or peace. Further, the
traders were an exact thermometer of the pacific or
hostile intention and feelings of the Indians with whom
they traded. Generally, they were foreigners, most
frequently Scotchmen, who had not been long in the
country, or upon the frontier, who, having experienced
none of the cruelties, depredation or aggressions of the
Indians, cherished none of the resentment and spirit of
retaliation born with, and everywhere manifested, by
the American settler. Thus, free from animosity
HUNTERS ACCOMPANY TRADERS. 85
against the aborigines, the trader was allowed to remain
in the village where he traded unmolested, even when
its warriors were singing the war song or brandishing
the war club, preparatory to an invasion or massacre
of the whites. Timely warning was thus often given
by a returning packman to a feeble and unsuspecting
settlement, of the perfidy and cruelty meditated against
it.
" This gainful commerce was, for a time, engrossed by
the traders ; but the monopoly was not allowed to con-
tinue long. Their rapid accumulations soon excited
the cupidity of another class of adventurers ; and the
hunter, in his turn, became a co-pioneer with the trader,
in the march of civilization to the wilds of the West.
As the agricultural population approached the eastern
base of the Alleghanies, the game became scarce, and
was to be found by severe toil in almost inaccessible
recesses and coves of the mountain. Packmen, re-
turning from their trading expeditions, carried with
them evidences, not only of the abundance of game
across the mountains, but of the facility with which it
was procured. Hunters began to accompany the tra-
ders to the Indian towns; but, unable to brook the
tedious delay of procuring peltries by traffic, and im-
36 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
patient of restraint, they struck boldly into the wilder-
ness, and western-like, to use a western phrase, set up
for themselves. The reports of their return, and of
their successful enterprise, stimulated other adven-
turers to a similar undertaking. ' As early as 1748
Doctor Thomas Walker, of Virginia, in company with
Colonels Wood, Patton and Buchanan, and Captain
Charles Campbell, and a number of hunters, made an
exploring tour upon the western waters. Passing
Powel's valley, he gave the name of ' Cumberland' to
the lofty range of mountains on the west. Tracing
this range in a south-western direction, he came to a
remarkable depression in the chain : through this he
passed, calling it ' Cumberland Gap.' On the western
side of the range he found a beautiful mountain stream,
which he named ' Cumberland River,' all in honor of the
Duke of Cumberland, then prime minister of England.*
These names have ever since been retained, and, with
Loudon, are believed to be the only names in Tennessee
of English origin.
"Although Fort Loudon was erected as early as 1756,
* Monette. The Indian name of this range was "Wasioto, and
of the river, Shawnee.
Pendleton's purchase. 37
upon the Tennessee, yet it was in advance of any-
white settlements nearly one hundred and fifty miles,
and was destroyed in 1760. The fort, too, at Long
Island, within the boundaries of the present State of
Tennessee, were erected in 1758, but no permanent
settlements had yet been formed near it. Still occasional
settlers had begun to fix their habitations in the south-
western section of "Virginia, and as early as 1754, six
families were residing west of New River. ' On the
breaking out of the French war, the Indians, in alliance
with the French, made an irruption into these settle-
ments, and massacred Burke and his family. The
other families, finding their situation too perilous to
be maintained, returned to the eastern side of New
River ; and the renewel of the attempt to carry the
white settlements further west, was not made until
after the close of that war.'*
" Under a mistaken impression that the Virginia line,
(when extended west, would embrace it, a grant
of land was this year made, by the authorities of
Virginia, to Edmund Pendleton, for three thousand
acres of land, lying in Augusta County, on a branch of
* Howe.
72
1756
1761 y
38 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the middle fork of the Indian river called West Creek *
now Sullivan County, Tennessee.
In this year, Doctor Walker again passed over Clinch
r and Powell's Eiver, on a tour of exploration into
1760 \ r ■ «-■'■,
( what is now Kentucky.
" The Cherokees were now at peace with the whites,
and hunters from the back settlements began with
safety to penetrate deeper and further into the wilder-
( ness of Tennessee. "Several of them, chiefly from
Virginia, hearing of the abundance of game with
which the woods were stocked, and allured by the
prospects of gain, which might be drawn from this
source, formed themselves into a company, composed
of Wallen, Scaggs, Blevins, Cox, and fifteen others,
and came into the valley since known as Carter's Val-
ley, in Hawkins County, Tennessee. They hunted
eighteen mouths upon Clinch and Powell's Eivers.
Wallen's Creek and Wallen's Ridge received their
name from the leader of the company; as also did
* The original patent, Bigned by Governor Dinwiddie, and
now in the possession of the writer, was presented to him by
T. A. R. Nelson, Esq., of Joneaboro, Tennessee. It is probably
the oldest grant in the State.
FIRST APPEARANCE IN THE WEST. 39
the station which they erected in the present Lee
County, Virginia, the Dame of Wallen's station. They
penetrated as far north as Laurel Mountain, in Ken-
tucky, where they terminated their journey, having
met with a body of Indians, whom they supposed to
be Shawnees. At the head of one of the companies
that visited the West this year ' came Daniel Boon,
from the Yadkin, in North Carolina, and traveled with
them as low as the place where Abingdon now stands,
and there left them.'
" This is the first time the advent of Daniel Boon to
the western wilds has been mentioned by historians,
or by the several biographers of that distinguished
pioneer and hunter. There is reason, however, to be-
lieve that he had hunted upon "Watauga earlier. The
writer is indebted to N. Gammon, Esq., formerly of
Jonesboro, now a citizen of Knoxville, for the following
inscription, still to be seen upon a beech tree, standing
in sight and east of the present stage-road, leading from
Jonesboro to Blountsville, and in the valley of Boon's
Creek, a tributary of Watauga :
40 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
D. Boon
CillED A. BAR On
Tree
in ThE
yEAR
1760
" Boon was eighty-six years old when he died, which
was September, 1820. He was thus twenty-six years
old when the inscription was made. "When he left the
company of hunters in 1761, as mentioned above by
Haywood, it is probable that he did so to revisit the
theatre of a former hunt upon the creek that still bears
his name, and where his camp is still pointed out near
its banks. It is not improbable, indeed, that he be-
longed to, or accompanied, the party of Doctor Wal-
ker, on his first, or certainly on his second, tour of
exploration in 1760. The inscription is sufficient au-
thority, as this writer conceives, to date the arrival of
Boon in Tennessee as early as its date, 1760, thus pre-
ceding the permanent settlement of the country nearly
ten years."
It will be observed that the historian in this extract,
spells Boon without the final e, following the ortnogra
ON CUMBERLAND MOUNTAIN. 41
phy of the hunter, in his inscription on the tree. This
orthography Boone used at a later period, as we shall
>
show. But the present received mode of spelling the
name is the one which we have adopted in this work.
On a subsequent page of Wheeler's history, we find
the following memorandum :
"Daniel Boon, who still lived on the Yadkin,
though he had previously hunted on the Western
waters, came again this year to explore the country,
being employed for this purpose by Henderson &
Company. With him came Samuel Callaway, his
kinsman, and the ancestor of the respectable family
of that name, pioneers of Tennessee, Kentucky, and
Missouri. Callaway was at the side of Boon when,
approaching the spurs of the Cumberland Mountain,
and in view of the vast herds of buffalo grazing in
the valleys between them, he exclaimed, " I am richer
than the man mentioned in Scripture, who owned the
cattle on a thousand hills ; I own the wild beasts of
more than a thousand valleys."
After Boone and Callaway, came another hunter,
Ilenry Scaggins, who was also employed by Hender-
son. He extended his explorations to the Lowei
Cumberland, and fixed his station at Mansco's Lick.
42 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
We shall have occasion to speak more particularly
of Henderson's company and Boone's connection with
it ; but we will first call the reader's attention to the
state of affairs in North Carolina at this period, and
their probable influence on the course pursued by
Daniel Boone.
CHAPTER IY.
Political and social condition of North. Carolina — Taxes — Law-
suits— Ostentation and extravagance of foreigners and gov-
ernment officers — Oppression of the people — Murmurs — Open
resistance — The Regulators — Willingness of Daniel Boone
and others to migrate, and their reasons — John Finley's ex-
pedition to the West — His report to Boone — He determines
to join Finley in his next hunting tour — New company
formed, with Boone for leader — Preparations for starting —
The party sets out — Travels for a month through the wilder-
ness— First sight of Kentucky — Forming a camp — Hunting
buffaloes and other game — Capture of Boone and Stuart by
the Indians — Prudent dissimulation — Escape from the In-
dians— Return to the old camp — Their companions lost—
Boone and Stuart renew their hunting.
There were many circumstances in the social and
political condition of the State of North Carolina,
during the period of Daniel Boone's residence on the
banks of the Yadkin, which, were calculated to render
him restless and quite willing to seek a home in the
"Western wilderness. Customs and fashions were
changing. The Scotch traders, to whom we have re-
(43)
44 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
ferred in the last chapter, and others of the same class
were introducing an ostentatious and expensive style
of living, quite inappropriate to the rural population
of the colony. In dress and equipage, they far sur-
passed the farmers and planters; and they were not
backward in taking upon themselves airs of superi-
ority on this account. In this they were imitated by
the officers and agents of the Royal government of
the colony, who were not less fond of luxury and
show. To support their extravagant style of living,
these minions of power, magistrates, lawyers, clerks
of court, and tax-gatherers, demanded exorbitant fees
for their services. The Episcopal clergy, supported
by a legalized tax on the people, were not content
with their salaries, but charged enormous fees for their
occasional services. A fee of fifteen dollars was ex-
acted from the poor farmer for performing the mar-
riage service. The collection of taxes was enforced
by suits at law, with enormous expense; and execu-
tions, levies, and distresses were of every-day occur-
rence. All sums exceeding forty shillings were sued
for and executions obtained in the courts, the original
debt being saddled with extortionate bills of cost.
Sheriffs demanded more than was due, under threes
DESIRE TO LEAVE FOR THE WEST. 45
of sheriff's sales; and they applied the gains thus
made to their own use. Money, as is always the case
in a new country, was exceedingly scarce, and the
sufferings of the people were intolerable.
Petitions to the Legislature for a redress of griev-
ances were treated with contempt. The people assem-
bled and formed themselves into an association for
regulating public grievances and abuse of power.
Hence the name given to them of Eegulators. They
resolved "to pay only such taxes as were agreeable
to law and applied to the purpose therein named, to
yay no officer more than his legal fees." The subse-
quent proceedings of the Eegulators, such as forcible
resistance to officers and acts of personal violence
toward them, at length brought on an actual collision
between them and an armed force led by the Eoyal
Governor, Tryon, (May 16, 1771,) at Alamanance, in
which the Eegulators were defeated ; and the griev-
ances continued with scarcely abated force till the
Revolution brought relief.
Under these circumstances, it is not surprising that
Daniel Boone and others were quite willing to migrate
to the Wett, if it were only to enjoy a quiet life ; the
dangers of Indian *ggrbi3sicn being less dreaded than
46 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the visits of the tax-gather and the sheriff; and the
solitude of the forest and prairie being preferred to
the society of insolent foreigners, flaunting in the
luxury and ostentation purchased by the spoils of
fraud and oppression.
Among the hunters and traders who pursued their
avocations in the "Western wilds was John Finley, or
Findley, who led a party of hunters in 1767 to the
neighborhood of the Louisa Kiver, as the Kentucky
River was then called, and spent the season in hunt-
ing and trapping. On his return, he visited Daniel
Boone, and gave him a most glowing description of
the country which he had visited — a country abound-
ing in the richest and most fertile land, intersected by
noble rivers, and teeming with herds of deer and buf-
faloes and numerous flocks of wild turkeys, to say
nothing of the smaller game. To these descriptions
Boone lent a willing ear. He resolved to accompany
Finley in his next hunting expedition, and to see
this terrestrial paradise with his own eyes, doubtless
with the intention of ultimately seeking a home in
that delightful region.
Accordingly, a company of six persons was formed
for a new expedition to the West, and Boone was
FIRST SIGHT OF KENTUCKY. 47
chosen as leader. The names of the other members
of this party were John Finley, John Stuart, Joseph
Holden, James Moncey, and William Cool.
Much preparation seems to have been required.
Boone's wife, who was one of the best of housekeepers
and managers, had to fit out his clothes, and to make
arrangements for house-keeping during his expected
long absence. His sons, were now old enough to assist
their mother in the management of the farm, but,
doubtless, they had to be supplied with money and
other necessaries before the father could venture to
leave home ; so that it was not till the 1st of May,
1769, that the party were able to set out, as Boone, in
his autobiography, expresses it, " in quest of the coun-
try of Kentucky."
It was more than a month before these adventurers
came in sight of the promised land. We quote from
Mr. Peck's excellent work the description which un-
doubtedly formed the authority on which the artist has
relied in painting the accompanying engraving of
" Daniel Boone's first view of Kentucky." It is as
follows :
"It was on the 7th of June, 1769, that six men,
weary and wayworn, were seen winding their way up
4b LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the* steep side of a rugged mountain in the wilderness
of Kentucky. Their dress was of the description
usually worn at that period by all forest rangers.
The outside garment was a hunting shirt, or loose
open frock, made of dressed deer skins. Leggings or
drawers, of the same material, covered the lower ex-
tremities, to which was appended a pair of moccasins
for the feet. The cape or collar of the hunting shirt,
and the seams of the leggings, were adorned with
fringes. The under garments were of coarse cotton.
A leather belt encircled the body ; on the right side
was suspended the tomahawk, to be used as a hatchet :
on the left side was the hunting-knife, powder-horn,
bullet-pouch, and other appendages indispensable for
ji hunter. Each person bore his trusty rifle ; and, as
the party slowly made their toilsome way amid the
shrubs, and over the logs and loose rocks that accident
had thrown into the obscure trail which they were
following, each man kept a sharp look-out, as though
danger or a lurking enemy was near. Their garments
were soiled and rent, the unavoidable result of long
traveling and exposure to the heavy rains that had
fallen ; for the weather had been stormy and most
uncomfortable, and they had traversed a mountainou?
APPEARANCE OF KENTUCKY. 49
wilderness for several hundred miles. The leader of
the party was of full size, with a hardy, robust,
sinewy frame, and keen, piercing, hazel eyes, that
g'utced with quickness at every object as they passed
on, now cast forward in the direction they were trav-
eling for signs of an old trail, and in the next moment
directed askance into the dense thicket, or into the
deep ravine, as if watching some concealed enemy.
The reader will recognize in this man the pioneer
Boone, at the head of his companions.
Toward the time of the setting sun, the party had
reached the summit of the mountain range, up which
they had toiled for some three or four hours, and
which had bounded their prospect to the west during
the day. Here new and indescribable scenery opened
to their view. Before them, for an immense distance,
as if spread out on a map, laj the rich and beautiful
vales watered by the Kentucky River ; for they had
now reached one of its northern branches. The coun-
try immediately before them, to use a Western phrase,
was " rolling," and, in places, abruptly hilly ; but far
in the vista was s«en a beautiful expanse of level
country, over which the buffalo, deer, and other forest
animals, roamed unmolested while they fed on the
4
50 LIFE OF COnONEL DANIEL BOONE.
luxuriant herbage of the forest. The countenances
of the party lighted up with pleasure, congratulations
were exchanged, the romantic tales of Finley were
confirmed by ocular demonstration, and orders were
given to encamp for the night in a neighboring ravine.
In a deep gorge of the mountain a large tree had
fallen, surrounded with a dense thicket, and hidden
from observation by the abrupt and precipitous hills.
This tree lay in a convenient position for the back of
their camp. Logs were placed on the right and left,
leaving the front open, where fire might be kindled
against another log ; and for shelter from the rains
and heavy dews, bark was peeled from the linden
tree."
This rude structure appears to have been the head-
quarters of the hunters through the whole summer and
autumn, till late in December. During this time, they
hunted the deer, the bear, and especially the buffalo.
The buffaloes were found in great numbers, feeding
on the leaves of the cane, and the rich and spontaneous
fields of clover.
During this long period, they saw no Indians. That
part of the country was not inhabited by any tribe at
that time, although it was used occasionally as a hunting
LEAVE CAMP. 51
£ivomd by the Shawanese, the Cherokees and the
Chiokesaws. The land at that time belonged to the
colony of Virginia, which then included what is now
called Kentucky. The title to the ground was acquired
by a treaty with the Indians, Oct. 5th, 1770. The Iro-
quois, at the treaty of Fort Stanwix, in 1768, had al-
ready ceded their doubtful claim to the land south of
the Ohio Kiver, to Great Britain ; so that Boone's com-
pany of hunters were not trespassing upon Indian ter-
ritory at this time* But they were destined neverthe-
less to be treated as intruders.
On the 22d of December, Boone and John Stuart,
one of his companions, left their encampment, and fol-
lowing one of the numerous paths which the buffalo
had made through the cane, they plunged boldly into
the interior of the forest. They had as yet, as we have
already stated, seen no Indians, and the country had
been reported as totally uninhabited. This was true
in a strict sense, for although, as we have seen, the
southern and northwestern tribes were in the habit of
hunting here as upon neutral ground, yet not a single
wigwam had been erected, nor did the land bear the
slightest mark of having ever been cultivated.
* Peck. Life of Boone.
52 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
The different tribes would fall in with each other,
and from the fierce conflicts which generally followed
these casual rencounters, the country had been known
among them by the name of 'the dark and bloody
ground P
The two adventurers soon learned the additional
danger to which they were exposed. "While roving
carelessly from canebrake to canebrake, and admiring
the rank growth of vegetation, and the variety of tim-
ber which marked the fertility of the soil, they were
suddenly alarmed by the appearance of a party of In-
dians, who, springing from their place of concealment,
rushed upon them with a rapidity which rendered es-
cape impossible.
They were almost instantly seized, disarmed, and
made prisoners. Their feelings may be readily im-
agined. They were in the hands of an enemy who
knew no alternative between adoption and torture;
and the numbers and fleetness of their captors, rendered
escape by open means impossible, while their jealous
vigilance seemed equally fatal to any secret attempt.
Boone, however, was possessed of a temper admira-
bly adapted to the circumstances in which he was
placed. Of a cold and saturnine, rather than an ardent
ESCAPE FKOM THE INDIANS. 53
disposition, he was never either so much elevated by-
good fortune or depressed by bad, as to lose for an
instant the full possession of all his faculties. He saw-
that immediate escape was impossible, but he en-
couraged his companion, and constrained himself to
accompany the Indians in all their excursions, with so
calm and contented an air, that their vigilance insen-
sibly began to relax.
On the seventh evening of their captivity, the yen-
camped in a thick canebrake, and having built a large
fire, lay down to rest. The party whose duty it was
to watch, were weary and negligent, and about mid-
night, Boone, who had not closed an eye, ascertained
from the deep breathing all around, him, that the whole
party, including Stuart, was in a deep sleep.
Gently and gradually extricating himself from the
Indians who lay around him, he walked cautiously to
the spot where Stuart lay, and having succeeded in
awakening him, without alarming the rest, he briefly
informed him of his determination, and exhorted him
to arise, make no noise, and follow him. Stuart, al-
though ignorant of the design, and suddenly roused
from sleep, fortunately obeyed with equal silence and
54 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
celerity, and within a few minutes they were beyond
hearing.
Rapidly traversing the forest, by the light of the
stars and the bark of the trees, they ascertained the
direction in which the camp lay, but upon reaching it
on the next day, to Lheir great grief, they found it
plundered and deserted, with nothing remaining to show
the fate of their companions : and even to the day of
his death, Boone knew not whether they had been
killed or taken, or had voluntarily abandoned their
cabin and returned.*
Indeed it has never been ascertained what became
of Finley and the rest of Boone's party of hunters.
If Finley himself had returned to Carolina, so re-
markable a person would undoubtedly have left some
trace of himself in the history of his time ; but no trace
exists of any of the party ay ho were left at the old camp
by Boone and Stuart. Boone and Stuart resumed their
hunting, although their ammunition wafl running low,
and they were compelled, by the now well-known dan-
ger of Indian hostilities, to seek for more secret and
secure hiding-places at night than their old encamp-
ment in the ravine.
* McClung. "Western Adventures."
BAREING OFF SQUIRRELS. 55
The only kind of firearms used by the backwoods
hunger is the rifle. In the use of this weapon Boone
was exceedingly skillful. The following anecdote, re-
lated by the celebrated naturalist, Audubon,* shows
that he retained his wonderful precision of aim till a
late period of his life.
" Barking off squirrels is delightful sport, and, in
my opinion, requires a greater degree of accuracy than
any other. I first witnessed this manner of procuring
squirrels whilst near the town of Frankfort. The
performer was the celebrated Daniel Boone. We
walked out together, and followed the rocky margins
of the Kentucky River, until we reached a piece of flat
land thickly covered with black walnuts, oaks, and
hickories. As the general mast was a good one that
year, squirrels were seen gambolling on every tree
around us. My companion, a stout, hale, and athletic
man, dressed in a homespun hunting- shirt, bare-legged
and moccasined, carried a long and heavy rifle, which,
as he was loading it, he said had proved efficient in
all his former undertakings, and which he hoped
would not fail on this occasion, as he felt proud to
show me his skill. The gun was wiped, the powder
measured, the ball patched with six-hundred-thread
* Ornithological Biography, pp. 293-4.
56 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
linen, and the charge sent home with a hickory rod
We moved not a step from the place, for the squirrels
were so numerous that it was unnecessary to go after
them. Boone pointed to one of these animals which
had observed us, and was crouched on a branch about
fifty paces distant, and bade me mark well the spot
where the ball should hit. He raised his piece gradu-
ally, until the bead (that being the name given by the
Kentuckians to the sight) of the barrel was brought to
a line with the spot which he intended to hit. The
whip-like report resounded through the woods and
along the hills in repeated echoes. Judge of my sur-
prise, when I perceived that the ball had hit the piece
of the bark immediately beneath the squirrel, and
shivered it into splinters, the concussion produced by
which had killed the animal, and sent it whirling:
through the air, as if it had been blown up by the
explosion of a powder magazine. Boone kept up his
firing, and before many hours had elapsed, we had
procured as many squirrels as we Avished; for you
must know that to load a rifle requires only a mo-
ment, and that if it is wiped once after each shot, it
will do duty for hours. Since that first interview with
our veteran Boone, I have seen many other indi
viduals perform the same feat."
CHAPTER V.
Arrival of Squire Boone and a companion at the camp of Daniel
Boone — Joyful meeting — News from home, and hunting re-
sumed— Daniel Boone and Stuart surprised hy the Indiana,
Stuart killed — Escape of Boone, and his return to camp-
Squire Boone's companion lost in the woods — Residence of
Daniel Boone and Squire Boone in the wilderness — Squire
returns to North Carolina, ohtains a fresh supply of ammu-
nition, and again rejoins his hrother at the old camp — Daniel
Boone's own account of this remarkable period of his life —
His return to North Carolina — His determination to settle iu
Kentucky — Other "Western adventurers — The Long hunters —
Washington in Kentucky — Bullitt's party — Floyd's party-
Thompson's survey — First settlement of Tennessee.
In the early part of the month of January, 1770,
Boone and Stuart were agreeably surprised by the
arrival of Squire Boone, the younger brother of
Daniel, accompanied by another man, whose name
has not been handed down. The meeting took place
as they were hunting in the woods. The new-comers
were hailed at a distance with the usual srreetinsr,
'Holloa! strangers, who are you?" to which they
(57)
58 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
answered, " White1 men and friends." And friends
indeed they were — friends in need; for they brought a
supply of ammunition, and news from Daniel Boone's
home and family on the Yadkin. They had had a
weary journey through the wilderness, and although
they had met with no Indians on their way, they had fre-
quently come upon their traces in passing through the
woods. Their purpose in undertaking this formidable
journey had been to learn the fate of Boone and his
party, whose safety was nearly despaired of by his
friends in North Carolina, to hunt for themselves, and
to convey a supply of ammunition to Boone. It is
difficult to conceive the joy with which their oppor-
tune arrival was welcomed. They informed Boone
that they had just seen the last night's encampment
of Stuart and himself, so that the joyful meeting was
not wholly unanticipated by them.
Thus reinforced, the party, now consisting of four
skillful hunters, might reasonably hope for increased
security, and a fortunate issue to their protracted
hunting tour. But they hunted in separate parties ;
and in one of these Daniel Boone and Stuart fell in
with a party of Indians, who fired upon them. Stu-
ait was shot dead and scalped by the Indians, but
>
RESIDENCE IN THE WILDERNESS. 59
Boone escaped in the forest, and rejoined his brother
and the remaining hunter of the party.
A few days afterward this hunter was lost in the
woods, and did not return as usual to the camp.
Daniel and Squire made a long and anxious search
for him ; but it was all in vain. Years afterward a
skeleton was discovered in the woods, which, was sup-
posed to be that of the lost hunter.
The two brothers were thus left in the wilderness
alone, separated by several hundred miles from, home,
surrounded by hostile Indians, and destitute of every
thing but their rifles. After having had such melan-
choly experience of the dangers to which they were
exposed, we would naturally suppose that their forti-
tude would, have given way, and that they would in-
stantly have returned to the settlements. But the
most remarkable feature in Boone's character was a
calm and cold equanimity which rarely rose to enthu-
siasm, and never sunk to despondence.
His courage undervalued the danger to which he
was exposed, and his presence of mind, which never
forsook him, enabled him, on all occasions to take the
best means of avoiding it. The wilderness, with all
its dangers and privations, had a charm for him, which
60 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
is scarcely conceivable by one brought up in a city ;
and lie determined to remain alone while bis brotbor
returned to Carolina for. an additional supply of am-
munition, as their original supply was nearly ex-
hausted. His situation we should now suppose in the
highest degree gloomy and dispiriting. The dangers
which attended his brother on his return were nearly
equal to his own ; and each had left a wife and chil-
dren, which Boone acknowledged cost him many an
anxious thought.
But the wild and solitary grandeur of the country
around him, where not a tree had been cut, nor a
house erected, was to him an inexhaustible source of
admiration and delight ; and he says to himself, that
some of the most rapturous moments of his life were
spent in those lonely rambles. The utmost caution
was necessary to avoid the savages, and scarcely less
tc escape the ravenous hunger of the wolves that
prowled nightly around him in immense numbers.
He was compelled frequently to shift his lodging, and,
by undoubted signs, saw that the Indians had repeat-
edly visited his hut during his absence. He some
times lay in canebrakes without fire, and heard tbe
I
>
IN" THE WILDERNESS. 61
yells of the Indians around him. Fortunately, how
ever, he never encountered them.*
Mr. Perkins, in his Annals of the West, speaking
of this sojourn of the brothers in the wilderness, saj^s :
And now commenced that most extraordinary life on
the part of these two men which has, in a great mea-
sure, served to give celebrity to their names ; we refer
to their residence, entirely alone, for more than a year,
in a land filled with the most subtle and unsparing
enemies, and under the influence of no other motive,
apparently, than a love of adventure, of Nature, and
of solitude. Nor were they, during this time, always
together. For three months, Daniel remained amid the
forest utterly by himself, while his brother, with cour-
age and capacity equal to his own, returned to North
Carolina for a supply of powder and lead ; with which
he succeeded in rejoining the roamer of the wilderness
in safety in July, 1770.
It is almost impossible to conceive of the skill, cool-
ness, and sagacity which enabled Daniel Boone to
spend so many weeks in the midst of the Indians, and
yet undiscovered by them. He appears to have
changed his position continually — to have explored
* McClung.
62 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the whole centre of what forms now the State of Ken
tucky, and in so doing must have exposed himself to
many different parties of the natives. A reader of
Mr. Cooper's Last of the Mohicans may comprehend,
in some measure, the arts by which he was preserved ;
but, after all, a natural gift seems to lie at the basis
of such consummate woodcraft ; an instinct, rather than
any exercise of intellect, appears to have guided Boone
m such matters, and made him pre-eminent among
those who were most accomplished in the knowledge
of forest life. Then we are to remember the week's
captivity of the previous year; it was the first practi-
cal acquaintance that the pioneer had with the Western
Indians, and we may be assured he spent that week
in noting carefully the whole method of his captors.
Indeed, we think it probable he remained in captivity
so long that he might learn their arts, stratagems, and
modes of concealment. "We are, moreover, to keep
in mind this fact : the woods of Kentucky were at that
period filled with a species of nettle of such a charac-
ter that, being once bent down, it did not recover
itself, but remained prostrate, thus retaining the im-
pression of a foot almost like snow — even a turkey
might be tracked in it with perfect ease. This weed
PHILOSOPHIC CONTENTMENT. 63
Boone would carefully avoid, but the natives, numer-
ous and fearless, would commonly pay no regard to
it, so that the white hunter was sure to have palpable
signs of the presence of his enemies, and the direction
they had taken. Considering these circumstances, it
is even more remarkable that his brother should have
returned in safety, with his loaded horses, than that
he remained alone unharmed ; though in the escape
of both from captivity or death from January, 1770,
until their return to the Atlantic rivers in March,
1771, there is something so wonderful that the old
pioneer's phrase, that he was " an instrument ordained
to settle the wilderness," seems entirely proper.
Daniel Boone's own account of this period of his
life, contained in his autobiography, is highly charac-
teristic. It is as follows :
" Thus situated, many hundred miles from our fami-
lies in the howling wilderness, I believe few would .
have equally enjoyed the happiness we experienced.
I often observed to my brother, ' You see now how
little nature requires to be satisfied. Felicity, the
companion of content, is rather found in our own
breasts than in the enjoyment of external things ; and
I firmly believe it requires but a little philosophy to
64 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
make a man happy in whatsoever state he is. This
consists in a full resignation to Providence, and a
resigned soul finds pleasure in a path strewed with
briers and thorns.'
"We continued not in a state of indolence, bur
hunted every day, and prepared a little cottage to
defend us from the winter storms. We remained
there undisturbed during the winter; and on the first
of May, 1770, my brother returned home to the set-
tlement by himself for a new recruit of horses and
ammunition, leaving me by myself, without bread,
salt, or sugar, without company of my fellow-creatures,
or even a horse or dog. I confess I never before was
under greater necessity of exercising philosophy and
fortitude. A few days I passed uncomfortably. The
idea of a beloved wife and family, and their anxiety
on account of my absence and exposed situation, made
sensible impressions on my heart. A thousand dread-
ful apprehensions presented themselves to my view,
and had undoubtedly disposed me to melancholy if
further indulged.
" One day I undertook a tour through the country,
and the diversity and beauties of Nature I met with
in this charming season expelled every gloomy and
IMPRESSIONS WHILE ALONE. ftfr
vexatious thought. Just at the close of day the gentle
gales retired, and left the place to the disposal of a
profound calm. Not a breeze shook the most tremu-
lous leaf. I had gained the summit of a commanding
ridge, and, looking round with astonishing delight,
beheld the ample plains, the beauteous tracts below.
On the other hand, I surveyed the famous river Ohio,
that rolled in silent dignity, marking the western
boundary of Kentucky with inconceivable grandeur.
At a vast distance I beheld the mountains lift their
venerable brows, and penetrate the clouds. All things
were still. I kindled a fire near a fountain of sweet
water, and feasted on the loin of a buck, which a few
hours before I had killed. The fallen shades of night
soon overspread the whole hemisphere, and the earth
seemed to gape after the hovering moisture. My
roving excursion this day had fatigued my body, and
diverted my imagination. I laid me down to sleep,
and I awoke not until the sun had chased away the
night. I continued this tour, and in a few days ex
plored a considerable part of the country, each day
equally pleased as the first. I returned to nvy old
oamp, which was not disturbed in my absence. I did
not confine my lodging to it, but often reposed in
66 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
thick canebrakes to avoid the savages, who, I believe,
often visited my camp, but fortunately for me in my
absence. In this situation I was constantly exposed
to danger and death. How unhappy such a situation
for a man tormented with fear, which is vain if no
danger comes, and, if it does, only augments the pain.
It was my happiness to be destitute of this afflicting
passion, with which I had the greatest reason to be
affected. The prowling wolves diverted my nocturnal
hours with perpetual howlings; and the various
species of animals in this vast forest in the daytime
were continually in my view.
" Thus I was surrounded with plenty in the midst
of want. I was happy in the midst of dangers and
inconveniences. In such a diversity it was impossible
I should be disposed to melancholy. No populous
city, with all the varieties of commerce and stately
structures, could afford so much pleasure to my mind
as the beauties of Nature I found here.
" Thus, through an uninterrupted scene of sylvan
pleasures, I spent the time until the 27th day of July
following, when my brother, to my great felicity, met
me, according to appointment, at our old camp.
Shortly after we left this place, not thinking it safe to
HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY DEFENDED. 67
stay there any longer, and proceeded to Cumberland
Kiver, reconnoitering that part of the country until
March, 1771, and giving names to the different
waters.
" Soon after, I returned home to my family, with a
determination to bring them as soon as possible to live
in Kentucky, which I esteemed a second paradise, at
the risk of my life and fortune.
" I returned safe to my old habitation, and found
my family in happy circumstances."
This extract is taken from the autobiography of
Daniel Boone, written from his own dictation by John
Filson, and published in 1784. Some writers have
censured this production as inflated and bombastic.
To us it seems simple and natural ; and we have no
doubt that the very words of Boone are given for the
most part. The use of glowing imagery and strong
figures is by no means confined to highly-educated
persons. Those who are illiterate, as Boone certainly
was, often indulge in this style. Even the Indians
are remarkably fond of bold metaphors and other
rhetorical figures, as is abundantly proved by their
speeches and legends.
While Boone had been engaged in his late hunting
68 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
tour, other adventurers were examining the rich lands
south of the Ohio * Even in 1770, while Boone was
wandering solitary in those Kentucky forests, a band
of forty hunters, led by Colonel James Knox, had gath-
ered from the valleys of New Eiver, Clinch, and Hol-
ston, to chase the buffaloes of the West ; nine of the
forty had crossed the mountains, penetrated the desert
and almost impassable country about the heads of the
Cumberland, and explored the region on the borders
of Kentucky and Tennessee. This hunting party, from
the length of time it was absent, is known in the tra-
ditions of the West as the party of the Long Hunters.
While these bold men were penetrating the valley of
the^Ohio, in the region of the Cumberland Gap, others
came from Virginia and Pennsylvania, by the river;
among them, and in the same year, that the Long Hun-
ters were abroad, (1770), came no less noted a person
than George Washington. His attention, as we have
before said, had been turned to the lands along the
Ohio, at a very early perod; he had himself large
claims, as well as far-reaching plans of settlement, and
he wished with his own eyes to examine the Western
lands, especially those about the mouth of the Kan-
* Perkins. "Annals of the West."
AFFAIRS IN THE OHIO VALLEY". 69
awha. From the journal of his expedition, published
by Mr. Sparks, in the Appendix to the second volume
of his Washington Papers, we learn some valuable
facts in reference to the position of affairs in the Ohio
valley at that time. We learn, for instance, that the
Yirginians were rapidly surveying and settling the
lands south of the river as far down as the Kanawhas ;
and that the Indians, notwithstanding the treaty of
Fort Stanwix, were jealous and angry at this constant
invasion of their hunting-grounds.
" This jealousy and anger were not supposed to cool
during the years next succeeding, and when Thomas
Bullitt and his party descended the Ohio in the sum-
mer of 1773, he found that no settlements would
be tolerated south of the river, unless the Indian
hunting-grounds were left undisturbed. To leave them
undisturbed was, however, no part of the plan of these
white men.
" This very party, which Bullitt led, and in which
were the two McAfees, Hancock, Taylor, Drennon
and others, separated, and while part went up tho
Kentucky Eiver, explored the banks, and made im-
portant surveys, including the valley in which Frank-
fort stands, the remainder went on to the Falls, and
70 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
laid out, in behalf of John Campbell and John Connolly,
the plan of Louisville. All this took place in the sum-
mer of 1773 ; and in the autumn of that year, or early
in the next, John Floyd, the deputy of Colonel William
Preston, the surveyor of Fincastle County, Virginia, in
which it was claimed that Kentucky was comprehen-
ded, also crossed the mountains; while General Thomp-
son of Pennsylvania, made surveys upon the north
fork of the Licking. When Boone, therefore, in Sep-
tember, commenced his march for the West, (as we
shall presently relate), the choice regions which he had
examined three years before, were known to numbers,
and settlers were preparing to desecrate the silent and
beautiful woods. Nor did the prospects of the English
colonists stop with the settlements of Kentucky. In
1773, General Lyman, with a number of military ad-
venturers, went to Natchez and laid out several town-
ships in that vicinity ; to which point emigration set
so strongly, that we are told, four hundred families
passed down the Ohio on their way thither, during
six weeks of the summer of that year."*
* Perkins. "Annals of the West."
CHAPTER VI.
Daniel Boone remains two years in North Carolina after his re-
turn from the West — He prepares to emigrate to Kentucky —
Character of the early settlers to Kentucky — The first class,
hunters — The second class, small farmers — The third class,
men of wealth and government oflicers.
Daniel Boone had now returned to his home on
the banks of the Yadkin, after an absence of no less
than two years, during which time he had not tasted,
as he remarks in his autobiography, either salt, sugar,
or bread. He must have enjoyed, in no ordinary
degree, the comforts of home. Carolina, however,
was to be his home but for a short time. He had
fully determined to go with his family to Kentucky,
and settle in that lovely region. He was destined to
found a State.
After Boone's return to North Carolina, more than
two years passed away before he could complete the
arrangements necessary for removing his family to
Kentucky. He sold his farm on the Yadkin, which
(71)
72 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
had been for many years under cultivation, and no
doubt brought him a sum amply sufficient for the ex-
penses of his journey and the furnishing of a new
home in the promised land. He had, of course, to
overcome the natural repugnance of his wife and
children to leave the home which had become dear to
them ; and he had also to enlist other adventurers to
accompany him. And here we deem it proper, be
fore entering upon the account of his departure, to
quote from a cotemporary,* some general remarks on
the character of the early settlers of Kentucky.
"Throughout the United States, generally, the most
erroneous notions prevail with respect to the character
of the first settlers of Kentucky ; and by several of
the American novelists, the most ridiculous uses have
been made of the fine materials for fiction which lie
scattered over nearly the whole extent of that region
of daring adventure and romantic incident. The com-
mon idea seems to be, that the first wanderers to Ken-
tucky were a simple, ignorant, low-bred, good-for-
nothing set of fellows, who left the frontiers and
sterile places of the old States, where a considerable
amount of labor was necessary to secure a livelihood,
* W. D. Gallagher, "Hesperian," Vol. II., p. 89.
CHARACTER OF SETTLERS IN KENTUCKY. 73
and sought the new and fertile country southeast of
the Ohio River and northwest of the Cumberland
Mountains, where corn would produce bread for them
with simply the labor of planting, and where the
achievements of their guns would supply them with
meat and clothing; a set of men who, with that in-
stinct which belongs to the beaver, built a number of
log cabins on the banks of some secluded stream,
which they surrounded with palisades for the better
protection of their wives and children, and then went
wandering about, with guns on their shoulders, or
traps under their arms, leading a solitary, listless,
ruminating life, till aroused by the appearance of
danger, or a sudden attack from unseen enemies,
when instantly they approved themselves the bravest
of warriors, and the most expert of strategists. The
romancers who have attempted to describe their
habits of life and delineate their characters, catching
this last idea, and imagining things probable of the
country they were in, have- drawn the one in lines
the most grotesque and absurd, and colored the other
with a pencil dipped in all hues but the right. To
them the early pioneers appear to have been people
of a character demi-devil, demi-savage, not only with
74 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
out the remains of former civilization, but without
even the recollection that thej had been born and
bred where people were, at the least, measurably sane,
somewhat religiously inclined, and, for the most,
civilly behaved.
" Both of these conceptions of the character of the
Pioneer Fathers are, to a certain extent, correct as
regards individuals among them; but the pictures
which have often been given us, even when held up
beside such individuals, will prove to be exaggerations
in more respects than one. Daniel Boone is an in-
dividual instance of a man plunging into the depths
of an unknown wilderness, shunning rather than
seeking contact with his kind, his gun and trap the
only companions of his solitude, and wandering about
thus for months,
' No mark upon the tree, nor print, nor track,
To lead him forward, or to guide him back.'
contented and happy ; yet, for all this, if those who
knew him well had any true conception of his cha-
racter, Boone was a man of ambition, and shrewd-
ness, and energy, and fine social qualities, and ex-
treme sagacity. And individual instances there may
INACCURATE DESCRIPTIONS OF PIONEERS. To
have been — though even this possibility is not sus-
tained by the primitive histories of those times — of
men who were so far outre to the usual course of their
kind, as to have afforded originals for the Sam Huggs,
the Nimrod Wildfires, the Ralph Stackpoles, the Tom
Braces, and the Earthquakes, which so abound in most
of those fictions whose locale is the "Western country.
But that naturalist who should attempt, by ever so
minute a description of a pied blackbird, to give his
readers a correct fdea of the Gracula Ferruginea of
ornithologists, would not more utterly fail of accom-
plishing his object, than have the authors whose crea-
tions we have named, by delineating such individual
instances — by holding up, as it were, such outre speci-
mens of an original class — failed to convey any thing
like an accurate impression of the habits, customs,
and general character of the western pioneers.
"Daniel Boone, and those who accompanied him
into the wildernesses of Kentucky, had been little
more than hunters in their original homes, on the
frontiers of North Carolina ; and, with the exception
of their leader, but little more than hunters did they
continue after their emigration. The most glowing
accounts of the beauty and fertility of the country
. 70 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
northwest of the Laurel Ridge, had reached their ears
from Finley and his companions ; and they shouldered
their guns, strapped their wallets upon their backs
and wandered through the Cumberland Gap into the
dense forests, and thick brakes, and beautiful plains
which soon opened upon their visions, more to in-
dulge a habit of roving, and gratify an excited curi-
osity, than from any other motive ; and, arrived upon
the head-waters of the Kentucky, they built them-
selves rude log cabins, and spenfTmost of their lives
in hunting and eating, and fighting maurauding bands
of Indians. Of a similar character were the earliest
Virginians, who penetrated these wildernesses. The
very first, indeed, who wandered from the parent
State over the Laurel Ridge, down into the unknown
regions on its northwest, came avowedly as hunters
and trappers ; and such of them as escaped the toma-
hawk of the Indian, with very few exceptions, re-
mained hunters and trappers till their deaths.
" But this first class of pioneers was not either
numerous enough, or influential enough, to stamp its
character upon the after-coming hundreds ; and the
second class of immigrants into Kentucky was com-
posed of very different materials. Small farmers
SECOND CLASS OF PIONEERS. 77
from North Carolina, Virginia, and Pennsylvania, for
the most part, constituted this ; and these daring ad-
venturers brought with them intelligent and aspiring
minds, industrious and persevering habits, a few of
the comforts of civilized life, and some of the imple-
ments of husbandry. A number of them were men
who had received the rudiments of an English educa-
tion, and not a few of them had been reared up in the
spirit, and a sincere observance of the forms, of re-
ligious worship. Many, perhaps most of them, were
from the frontier settlements of the States named ; and
these combined the habits of the hunter and agri-
culturist, and possessed, with no inconsiderable knowl-
edge of partially refined life, all that boldness and
energy, which subsequently became so distinctive a
trait of the character of the early settlers.
" This second class of the pioneers, or at least the
mass of those who constituted it, sought the plains
and forests, and streams of Kentucky, not to indulge
.any inclination for listless ramblings ; nor as hunters
or trappers ; nor yet for the purpose of gratifying an
awakened curiosity : they came deliberately, soberly,
thoughtfully, in search of a home, determined, from the
outset, to win one, or perish in the attempt; they
78 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
came to cast their lot in a land that was new, to
better their worldly condition by the acquisition of
demesnes, to build up a new commonwealth in an un-
peopled region ; they came with their wives, and their
children, and their kindred, from places where the
toil of the hand, and the sweat of the brow, could
hardly supply them with bread, to a land in which
ordinary industry would, almost at once, furnish all
the necessaries of life, and where it was plain well-
directed effort would ultimately secure its ease, its
dignity, and its refinements. Poor in the past, and
with scarce a hope, without a change of place, of a
better condition of earthly existence, either for them-
selves or their offspring, they saw themselves, with
that change, rich in the future, and looked forward
with certainty to a time when their children, if not
themselves, would be in a condition improved beyond
compare.
" There was also a third class of pioneers, who in
several respects differed as much from either the first
or the second class, as these differed from each other.
This class was composed, in great part, of men who
came to Kentucky after the way had been in some
measure prepared for immigrants, and yet before the
FOUNDERS OF KENTUCKY. 79
setting in of that tide of population which, a year or
two after the close of the American Revolution,
poured so rapidly into these fertile regions from
several of the Atlantic States. In this class of immi-
grants, there were many gentlemen of education, re-
finement, and no inconsiderable wealth ; some of
whom came to Kentucky as surveyors, others as com-
missioners from the parent State, and others again as
land speculators; but most of them as hona fide immi-
grants, determined to pitch their tents in the Great
West, at once to become units of a new people, and to
grow into affluence, and consideration, and renown,
with the growth of a young and vigorous common-
wealth.
"Such were the founders of Kentucky; and in
them we behold the elements of a society inferior, in
all the essentials of goodness and greatness, to none
in the world. First came the hunter and trapper, to
trace the river courses, and^ spy out the choice spots
of the land ; then came the small farmer and the
hardy adventurer, to cultivate the rich plains dis-
covered, and lay the nucleuses of the towns and
cities, which were so soon, and so rapidly, to spring
up ; and then came the surveyor, to mark the bound-
80 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
aries of individual possessions and give civil shape
and strength to the unformed mass, the speculator to
impart a new activity and keenness to the minds of
men, and the chivalrous and educated gentleman, to
infuse into the crude materials here collected together,
the feelings and sentiments of refined existence, and
to mould them into forms of conventional beauty and
social excellence. Kentucky now began to have a
society, in which were the sinews of war, the power of
production, and the genius of improvement ; and from
this time, though still harassed, as she had been from
the beginning, by the inroads of a brave and deter-
mined enemy on her north, her advancement was
regular and rapid.
CHAPTER VII.
Daniel Boone sets out for Kentucky with his family and his
brother Squire Boone — Is joined by five families and forty men
at Powell's Valley — The party is attacked by Indians and Dan-
iel Boone's oldest son is killed — The party return to the set-
tlements on Clinch River — Boone, at the request of Gover-
nor Dunmore, goes to the West and conducts a party of sur-
veyors to Virginia — Boone receives the command of three gar-
risons and the commission of Captain — He takes a part in the
Dunmore war — Battle of Point Pleasant and termination of
the war.
Having completed all his arrangements for the
journey, on the 25th of September, 1774, Daniel Boone,
with his wife and children, set out on his journey to
the West. He was accompanied by his brother, Squire
Boone ; and the party took with them cattle and swine,
with a view to the stocking of their farms, when they
should arrive in Kentucky. Their bedding and other
baggage was carried by pack-horses.
At a place called Powel's Valley, the party was rein-
forced by another body of emigrants to the West con-
6 (81)
82 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
sisting of five families arid no less than forty able-bodied
men; well armed and provided with provisions and
ammunition.
They now went on in high spirits, " camping out "
every night in woods, under the shelter of rude tents
constructed with poles covered with bed-clothes. They
thus advanced on their journey without accident or
alarm, until the 6th of October, when they were ap-
proaching a pass in the mountains, called Cumberland
Gap. The young men who were engaged in driving
the cattle had fallen in rear of the main body a dis-
tance of five or six miles, when they were suddenly
assailed by a party of Indians, who killed six of theii
number and dispersed the cattle in the woods. A sev-
enth man escaped with a wound. The reports of the
musketry brought the remainder of the party to the
rescue, who drove off the Indians and buried the dead.
Among the slain was the oldest son of Daniel Boone.
A council was now held to determine on their fu-
ture proceedings, Notwithstanding the dreadful do-
mestic misfortune which he had experienced in the loss
of his son, Daniel Boone was for proceeding to Ken-
tucky ; in this opinion he was sustained by his brother
and some of the other emigrants ; but most of them
RESIDENCE ON CLINCH RIVER. 83
were so much disheartened by the misfortune they had
met with, that they insisted on returning ; and Boone
and his brother yielding to their wishes, returned to
the settlement on the Clinch Eiver, in the south-wes-
tern part of Virginia, a distance of forty miles from the
place where they had been surprised by the Indians.
Here Boone was obliged to remain with his family
for the present ; but he had by no means relinquished
his design of settling in Kentucky. This delay, how-
ever, was undoubtedly a providential one ; for in con-
sequence of the murder of the family of the Indian
chief Logan, a terrible Indian war, called in history
the Dunmore War, was impending, which broke out in
the succeeding year, and extended to that part of the
"West to which Boone and his party were proceeding,
when they were turned back by the attack of the In-
dians.
In this war Daniel Boone was destined to take an
active part. In his autobiography, already quoted, he
says:
" I remained with my family on Clinch until the 6th
of June, 1774, when I and one Michael Stoner were
solicited by Governor Dunmore, of Virginia, to go to
the Falls of the Ohio, to conduct into the settlement a
84 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
number of surveyors that had been sent thither by him
some months before ; this country having about this
time drawn the attention of many adventurers. We
immediately complied with the governor's request, and
conducted in the surveyors, completing a tour of
eight hundred miles, through many difficulties, in six-
ty-two days !
" Soon after I returned home, I was ordered to take
command of three garrisons, during the campaign which
Governor Dunmore carried on asrainst the Shawanese
Indians."
These three garrisons were on the frontier contigu-
ous to each other; and with the command of them
Boone received a commission as captain.
We quote from a contemporary an account of the
leading events of this campaign, and of the battle of
Point Pleasant, which may be said to have terminated
the war. Whether Boone was present at this battle
is uncertain ; but his well-known character for ability
and courage, renders it probable that he tok a part in
the action.
The settlers, now aware that a general warfare
would be commenced by the Indians, immediately
sent an express to Williamsburg, the seat of govern-
THE DUNMORE WAR. 85
ment in Virginia, communicating their apprehensions,
and soliciting protection.
The Legislature was in session at the time, and it
was immediately resolved upon to raise an army of
about three thousand men, and march into the heart
of the Indian country.
One half of the requisite number of troops was
ordered to be raised in Virginia, and marched under
General Andrew Lewis across the country to the
mouth of the Kenhawa; and the remainder to be ren-
dezvoused at Fort Pitt, and be commanded by Dun-
more in person, who proposed to descend the Ohio
and join Lewis at the place mentioned, from where
the combined army was to march as circumstances
might dictate at the time.
By the 11th of September the troops under General
Lewis, numbering about eleven hundred men, were in
readiness to leave. The distance across to the mouth
of the Kenhawa, was near one hundred and sixty
miles through an unbroken wilderness. A competent
guide was secured, the, baggage mounted on pack
horses, and in nineteen days they arrived at the place
of destination.
The next morning after the arrival of the army at
86 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
Point Pleasant, as the point of land at the junction
of the Kenhawa and the Ohio was called, two men
were out some distance from the camp, in pursuit of a
deer, and were suddenly fired upon by a large body
of Indians ; one was killed, and the other with diffi-
culty retreated back to the army; who hastily re-'
ported " that he had seen a body of the enemy cover-
ing four acres of ground, as closely as they could
stand by the side of each other."
General Lewis was a remarkably cool and con-
siderate man ; and upon being informed of this, "after
deliberately lighting his pipe," gave orders that the
regiment under his brother, Colonel Charles Lewis,
aud another under Colonel Fleming, should march
and reconnoiter the enemy, while he would place the
remainder of the troops in order for battle. The two
regiments marched without delay, and had not pro-
ceeded more than four hundred yards when they were
met by the Indians, approaching for the same pur-
pose. A skirmish immediately ensued, and before
the contest had continued long, the colonels of the
two regiments fell mortally wounded, when a disorder
in the ranks followed, and the troops began a pre-
cipitate retreat; but almost at this moment another
BATTLE OF POINT PLEASANT. 87
regiment under Colonel Field arriving to their aid,
and coming up with great firmness to the attack
effectually checked the savages in the pursuit, and
obliged them in turn to give way till they had retired
behind a breastwork of logs and brush which thev
had partially constructed.
Lewis, on his arrival at the place, had encamped
quite on the point of land between the Ohio and Ken-
hawa, and having moved but a short distance out to
the attack, the distance across from river to river was
still but short. The Indians soon extending their
ranks entirely across, had the Virginians completely
hemmed in, and in the event of getting the better of
them, had them at their disposal, as there could have
been no chance for escape.
Never was ground maintained with- more obstinacy ;
for it was slowly, and with no precipitancy, that the
Indians retired :to their breastwork. The division
under Lewis was first broken, although that under
Fleming was nearly at the same moment attacked.
This heroic officer first received two balls through ms
left wrist, but continued to exercise his command
with the greatest coolness and presence of mind. His
voice was continually heard, " Don't lose an inch of
88 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
ground. Advance, outflank the enemy, and get be-
tween them and the river." But his men were about
to be outflanked by the body that had just defeated
Lewis ; meanwhile the arrival of Colonel Field turned
the fortune of the day, but not without a severe loss ;
Colonel Fleming was again wounded, by a shot
through the lungs ; yet he would not retire, and Col-
onel Field was killed as he was leading on his men.
The whole line of the breastwork now became as a
blaze of fire, which lasted nearly till the close of the
day. Here the Indians under Logan, Cornstock,
Elenipsico, Red-Eagle, and other mighty chiefs of the
tribes of the Shawneese, Delawares, Mingos, Wyan-
dots, and Cayugas, amounting, as was supposed, to
fifteen hundred warriors, fought, as men will ever do
for their country's wrongs, with a bravery which
could only be equaled. The voice of the great Corn-
stock was often heard during the day, above the din
of strife, calling on his men in these words : " Be
strong ! Be strong !" And when by the repeated
charges of the whites, some of his warriors began to
waver, he is said to have sunk his tomahawK into the
head of one who was basely endeavoring to desert.
General Lewis, finding at length that every cbargo
DEFEAT OF THE INDIANS. 89
upon the lines of the Indians lessened the number of
his forces to an alarming degree, and rightly judging
that if the Indians were not routed before it was dark,
a day of more doubt might follow, he resolved to throw
a body, if possible, into their rear. As the good fortune
of the Virginians turned, the bank of the river favored
this project, and forthwith three companies were de-
tached upon the enterprise, under the three captains,
Isaac Shelby (after renowned in the revolution, and
since in the war with Canada,) George Matthews, and
John Stewart. These companies got unobserved to their
place of destination upon Crooked Creek, which runs
into the Kenhawa. From the high weeds upon the
bank of this little stream, they iushed upon the backs
of the Indians with such fury, as to drive them from
their works with precipitation. The day was now
decided. The Indians, thus beset from a quarter they
did not expectj^vere ready to conclude that a rein-
forcement had arrived. It was about sunset when
they fled across the Ohio, and immediately took up
their march for their towns on the Scioto."
Of the loss of both Indians and whites in this en-
gagement, various statements have been given. A
number amounting to seventy-five killed, and one
90 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
hundred and forty wounded of the whites, has been
rendered ; with a loss on part of the Indians not so
great, but not correctly known.* This was the
severest battle ever fought with the Indians in Vir
ginia. Shortly after this battle the Indians sent mes-
sengers to Governor D^nmore, suing for peace, and a
treaty was accordingly concluded. In this treaty the
Indians surrendered all claim to Kentucky. The Six
Nations had already done the same thing at the
Treaty of Fort Stanwix in 1768. The Cherokees had
sold their claims to Henderson's company ; so that
when Boone settled in Kentucky it was effectually
cleared of all Indian titles.
* " History of the Backwoods."
CHAPTER VIII.
The militia discharged — Captain Boone returns to his family —
Henderson's company — Various companies of emigrants to
Kentucky — Bounty lands — Harrod's party builds the first log-
cabin erected in Kentucky, and founds Harrodsburg — Pro-
ceedings of Henderson's company — Agency of Captain Boone
— He leads a company to open a road to Kentucky River —
Conflicts with the Indians — Captain Boone founds Boones-
borough — His own account of this expedition — His letter to
Henderson — Account of Colonel Henderson and the Transyl-
vania Company — Failure of the scheme — Probability of Boone
having been several years in the service of Henderson.
On' the conclusion of Dunmore's war, the militia
were discharged from service, the garrisons which
had been under Captain Daniel Boone's command
were broken up, and he once more returned to his
family, who were still residing on Clinch River. But
he was not long permitted to remain comparatively
idle. Captain Boone's character as an able officer and
a bold pioneer, was now well known and appreciated
by the public. The marks of confidence bestowed on
* (91)
92 »%L1FE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
him by Governor Dunmore rendered him one of the
most conspicuous men in the Southern colonies, and
his services were soon to be put in requisition by the
most considerable and remarkable of all the parties
of adventurers who ever sought a home in the "West.
This was Henderson's company, called the Transyl-
vania Company, to whose proceedings we shall pre-
sently refer.
Between 1769 and 1773, various associations of
men were formed, in Virginia and North Carolina, for
visiting the newly-discovered regions and locating
lands; and several daring adventurers, at different
times during this period, penetrated to the head- waters
of the Licking River, and did some surveying ; but it
was not till the year 1774 that the whites obtained any
permanent foothold in Kentucky. From this year,
therefore, properly dates the commencement of the
early settlements of the State.*
The first great impetus given to adventure in Ken-
tucky was by the bounty in Western land? given by
Virginia to the officers and soldiers of her OArn troops
who had served in the British army in the old war in
Canada between the English and French. These lands
* Gallagher,
HARROD ARRIVES IN KENTUCKY. 93
were to be surveyed on the Ohio Eiver, and its tribu-
taries, by the claimants thus created, who had the
privilege of selecting them wherever they pleased
within the prescribed regions. The first locations
were made upon the Great Kenawha in the year 1772,
and the next on the south side of the Ohio itself the
following year. During this year, likewise, extensive
tracts of land were located on the north fork of the
Licking, and surveys made of several salt-licks, and
other choice spots. But 1774 was more signalized
than had been any preceding year by the arrival, in
the new " land of promise," of the claimants to por-
tions of its territory, and the execution of surveys.
Among the hardy adventurers who descended the
Ohio this year and penetrated to the interior of Ken-
tucky by the river of that name, was James Harrod,
who led a party of Virginians from the shores of the
Monongahela. He disembarked at a point still known
as " Harrod's Landing," and, crossing the country in
a direction nearly west, paused in the midst of a beau-
tiful and fertile region, and built the first log-cabin ever
erected in Kentucky, on or near the site of the present
town of Harrodsburg. This was in the spring, or
early part of the summer, of 1774*
* Gallagher.
94 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
The high- wrought descriptions of the country north
west of the Laurel Eidge, which were given by Daniel
Boone upon his return to North Carolina after his
first long visit to Kentucky, circulated with great
rapidity throughout the entire State, exciting the
avarice of speculators and inflaming the imaginations
of nearly all classes of people. The organization of
several companies, for the purpose of pushing adven-
ture in the new regions and acquiring rights to land,
was immediately attempted; but that which com-
menced under the auspices of Colonel Eichard Hen-
derson, a gentleman of education and means, soon
engaged public attention by the extent and boldness
of its scheme, and the energy of its movements ; and
either frightened from their purpose, or attracted to
its own ranks, the principal of those individuals who
had at first been active in endeavoring to form other
associations.
The whole of that vast extent of country lying
within the natural boundaries constituted by the Ohio,
Kentucky, and Cumberland rivers, was at this time
claimed by a portion of the Cherokee Indians, who
resided within the limits of North Carolina ; and the
scheme of Henderson's Company was nothing less
Henderson's purchase. 95
than to take possession of this immense territory, un-
der color of a purchase from those Indians, which they
intended to make, and the preliminary negotiations
for which were opened with the Cherokees, through
the agency of Daniel Boone, as soon as the company
was fully organized. Boone's mission to the Indians
having been attended with complete success, and the
result thereof being conveyed to the company, Colonel
Henderson at once started for Fort Wataga, on a
branch of the Holston Eiver, fully authorized to effect
the purchase; and here, on the 17th of March, 1775,
he met the Indians in solemn council, delivered them
a satisfactory consideration in merchandise, and re-
ceived a deed signed by their head chiefs.
The purchase made, the next important step was to
take possession of the territory thus acquired. The
* proprietors were not slow to do this, but immediately
collected a small company of brave and hardy men,
which they sent into Kentucky, under the direction of
Daniel Boone, to open a road from the Holston to the
Kentucky Eiver, and erect a Station at the mouth of
Otter Creek upon this latter.
After a laborious and hazardous march through the
wilderness, during which four men were killed, and
96 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
five others wounded, by trailing and skulking parties
of hostile Indians, Boone and his company reached
the banks of the Kentucky on the first of April, and
descending this some fifteen miles, encamped upon the
spot where Boonesborough now stands. Here the
bushes were at once cut down, the ground leveled, the
nearest trees felled, the foundations laid for a fort, and
the first settlement of Kentucky commenced.
Perhaps the reader would like to see Boone's own
account of these proceedings. Here is the passage
where he mentions it in his autobiography. He has
just been speaking of Governor Dunmore's war against
the Shawanese Indians : " After the conclusion of
which, he says, the militia was discharged from each
garrison, and I being relieved from my post, was so-
licited by a number of North Carolina gentlemen, that
were about purchasing the lands lying on the South
side of JKentucky River from tne Cherokee Indians, to
attend their treaty at Wataga, in March, 1775, to ne-
gotiate with them, and mention the boundaries of the
purchase. This I accepted ; and at the request of the
same gentlemen, undertook to mark out a road in the
best passage through the wilderness to Kentucky, with
BOONESBOROUGH FOUNDED. 97
such assistance as I thought necessary to employ for
such an important undertaking?
" I soon began this work, having collected a num •
her of enterprising men, well armed. We proceeded
with all possible expedition until we came within
fifteen miles of where Boonesborough now stands, and
where we were fired upon by a party of Indians, that
killed two, and wounded two of our number; yet, al-
though surprised and taken at a disadvantage, we stood
our ground. This was on the twentieth of March,
1775. Three days after we were fired upon again, and
had two men killed and three wounded. Afterward
we proceeded«on to Kentucky River without opposition,
and on the fifth day of April began to erect the fort
of Boonesborough at a salt-lick, about sixty yards from
the river, on the south side."
" On the fourth day, the Indians killed one of our
men. We were busily engaged in building the^prt,
until the fourteenth day of June following, without any
further opposition from the Indians."
Tn addition to this account by Captain Boone, we
hive another in a sort of offioial report made by him
to Colonel Richard Henderson, t,he head of the com-
98 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
pany in whose service Boone was then employed. It
is cited by Peck in his Life of Boone, as follows :
"April 15th, 1775.
" Deae Colonel : After my compliments to you, I
shall acquaint you with our misfortune. On March
the 25th a party of Indians fired on my company
about half an hour before day, and killed Mr. Twitty
and his negro, and wounded Mr. Walker very deeply,
but I hope he will recover.
" On March the 28th, as we were hunting for pro-
visions, we found Samuel Tate's son, who gave us an
account that the Indians fired on their camp on the
27th day. My brother and I went down and found
two men killed and scalped, Thomas McDowell and
Jeremiah McPeters. I have sent a man down to all
the lower companies in order to gather them all to the
mouth of Otter Creek. My advice to you, sir, is to
com™or send as soon as possible. Your company is
•
desired greatly, for the people are very uneasy, but
are willing to stay and venture their lives with you ;
and now is the time to flusterate their (the Indians)
intentions, and keep the country whilst we are in it.
If we give way to them now, it will ever be the case.
COLONEL HENDERSON. 99
This day we start from the battle-ground for the
month of Otter Creek, where we shall immediately
erect a fort, which will be done before you can come
or send ; then we can send ten men to meet you if
you send for them.
" I am, sir, your most obedient,
"Daniel Boone.
" N. B. — "We stood on the ground and guarded our
baggage till day, and lost nothing. "We have about
fifteen miles to Cantuck, at Otter Creek."
Colonel Henderson was one of the most remarkable
men of his time. He was born in Hanover County,
Virginia, April 20th, 1735, the same year with Boone.
He studied law, and was appointed judge of the Su-
perior Court of North Carolina under the Colonial
government. The troubled times of the Eegulators
shut up the courts of justice. In 1774 he engaged in
his grand scheme of founding the republic oMTran-
sylvania, and united with him John Williams, Leonaid
Hendly Bullock, of Granville; William Johnston,
James Hogg, Thomas Hart, John Lutterell, Nathan-
iel Hart, and David Hart, of Orange County, in the
company which made the purchase of the immense
tract of lands above referred to.
100 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
The company took possession of the lands on the
20th of April, 1775 ; the Indians appointing an agent
to deliver them according to law.
The Governor of North Carolina, Martin, issued
his proclamation in 1775, declaring this purchase
illegal. The State subsequently granted 200,000 acres
to the company in lieu of this.
The State of Virginia declared the same, but granted
the company a remuneration of 200,000 acres, bounded
by the Ohio and Green rivers. The State of Ten-
nessee claimed the lands, but made a similar grant to
the company in Powell's Valley. Thus, though the
original scheme of founding an independent republic
failed, the company made their fortunes by the specu-
lation. Henderson died at his seat in Granville, Jan-
uary 30, 1785, universally beloved and respected.
What makes Henderson and his company particu-
larly Mtterest'ing to the admirers of Daniel Boone is,
the strong probability that the, purchase of the Chero-
kees was made on his representation and by his advice.
This is the opinion of Judge Hall and of Mr. Peck,
who also believe that Boone was already in the ser-
vice of Henderson when he made his long journey to
Kentucky. " This theory," says Mr. Peck, '-'explains
SUGGESTS HENDERSON'S PURCHASE. 101
why his brother, Squire Boone, came out with sup
plies, and why they examined the country so fully
and particularly between the Kentucky and Cumber-
land rivers."
CHAPTER IX.
Description of the Old Fort at Boonesborough — Usual methods
of fortification against the Indians — Arrival of more settlers
at Boonesborough — Captain Boone returns to the Clinch River
to bring out his family — He enlists new emigrants and starts
for Kentucky — Reinforced by a large party at Powell's Valley
— Arrival at Boonesborough — Arrival of many new settlers at
Boonesborough and Harrod's settlement — Arrival of Kenton,
Floyd, the McAfees, and other distinguished persons — Arrival
of Colonel Richard Callaway.
As the old fort at Boonesborough became so cele-
brated in the Indian wars which followed its erection,
our readers may be curious to know what sort of
structure it was. "We have accordingly copied from
a print in Collins1 Historical Sketches of Kentucky a
view of the fort, from a drawing made by Colonel
Henderson himself, and the following description :
"It was situated adjacent to the river, with one of the
angles resting on its bank near the water, and extend
ing from it in the form of a parallelogram. The length
of the fort, allowing twenty feet for each cabin and
(102)
FORT AT BOONESBOROUGH. 10S
opening, must have been about two hundred and sixty,
and the breadth one hundred and fifty feet. In a few-
days after the work was commenced, one of the men
was killed by the Indians." The houses, being built
of hewn logs, were bullet proof. They were of a
square form, and one of them projected from each
corner, being connected by stockades. The remaining
space on the four sides, as will be seen by the en-
graving, was filled up with cabins erected of rough
logs, placed close together. The gates were on oppo-
site sides, made of thick slabs of timber, and hung on
wooden hinges. This was in accordance with the
fashion of the day.
11 A fort, in those rude military times," says Butler,*
a consisted of pieces of timber sharpened at the end/
and firmly lodged in the ground: rows of these
pickets enclosed the desired space, which embraced
the cabins of the inhabitants. A block-house or more,
of superior care and strength, commanding the sides
of the fort, with or without a ditch, completed the
fortifications or Stations, as they were called. Gen-
erally the sides of the interior cabins formed the sides
of the fort. Slight as this advance was in the art of
* History of Kentucky.
104 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
war, it was more than sufficient against attacks of
small arms in the hands of such desultory warriors,
as their irregular supply of provisions necessarily
rendered the Indians. Such was the nature of the
military structures of the provision against their
enemies. They were ever more formidable in the
canebrakes and in the woods than before even these
imperfect fortifications."
We have seen in Boone's own account that the fort
at Boonesborough was completed on the 14th of June,
1774. The buildings necessary for the accommoda-
tion and safety of the little colony, and of the relatives
and friends by whom they expected to be joined
during the summer and fall, were completed about
this time. Colonel Henderson, Mr. John Luttrell, and
Mr. Nathaniel Hart, three of the proprietors, arrived
at the station, which was now named Boonesborough,
in compliment to the intrepid pioneer. These gentle-
men brought out with them between thirty and forty
new settlers, a goodly number of pack-horses,* and
some of the necessaries of civilized life ; and the* Sta-
tion, upon which various improvements were soon
made, at once became quite a bustling, life-like, im
portant military place. Much pleased with the manner
REMOVES HIS FAMILY TO KENTUCKY. 105
in which he had commenced the settlement of a new
commonwealth, and laid the foundations of what he
doubted not was soon to become a great city, Boone
took a part of his men and returned to the settlement
on Clinch River, for the purpose of setting an example
to others by moving out his own family.
The daring pioneer was now in high spirits, and
more than ever enraptured with the deep forests and
rich plains of Kentucky. He sounded their praises
without intermission among the settlers on Clinch
River, and soon induced a number of persons to agree
to accompany him on his return to Boonesborough.
He then went about making his domestic arrange-
ments, for a final removal to Kentucky, with great
energy ; and these being soon completed, in Septem-
ber or October he turned his back upon his old home
forever, and started with his family and a few fol-
lowers toward that which his unsurpassed daring and
rude skill had prepared for them in a new land. In
Powell's Valley he found Hugh McGary, Richard
Hogan, and Thomas Denton, with their families and
followers, awaiting his arrival. His companions, as
now increased, amounted to twenty-six men, four
women, and four or five boys and girls, perhaps half
106 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
fci-own ; and placing himself at the head of this inter-
esting little colony, he proudly led it through the
Cumberland Gap into the wilderness beyond, where
it was destined to be the germ of a great State.
When this party had arrived at the head of Dick's
Kiver, McGrary, Denton, and Hogan, with their fami-
lies and a few followers, separated themselves from
the rest, and struck through the forest for the spot
where Harrod and his Monongahelians had built their
cabin the year before. Boone, with the main body
of the party, continued his original course, and in
due time arrived safely at Boonesborough ; " and Mrs.
Boone and her daughter," it is always recorded with
an air of pleasant exultation by the admirers of the
old pioneer, " were the earliest white women in that
region, and the first of their sex and color that ever
stood upon the banks of the wild and beautiful
Kentucky."
During the latter part of the year 1775, a great
many adventurers and surveyors, principally from
Virginia and North Carolina, made their appearance
in Kentucky ; and for all such, Boonesborough was a
place of general rendezvous. Some united themselves
to Boone's colony, and remained permanently at his
PROGRESS OF THE SETTLEMENT. 10"/
Station ; others clustered around Harrod's Old Cabin,
and the Fort which had by this time been erected by
Logan, and made " improvements " in the vicinity of
each; but most of them returned to their several homes
after having made such locations and surveys as they
thought proper. Among those by whom Boone was
visited in the course of this year, were several men who
have subsequently rendered very important services
in the settlement of the West, and attained great and
deserved celebrity : such were Simon Kenton, John
Floyd, the four brothers McAfee, and others. A tol-
erably good road, sufficient for the passage of pack-
horses in single file, had been opened from the settle-
ments on the Holston to Boonesborough, by the party
which Boone led out early in the following spring ;
and this now became the thoroughfare for other adven-
turers, a number of whom removed their families from
North Carolina to Kentucky, and settled at Boones-
borough, during the fall and winter of this year. Col-
onel Richard Callaway was one of these; and there
were others of equal respectability.
CHAPTER X.
Disturbed state of the country in 1775 — Breaking out of the
Revolutionary war — Exposed situation of the Kentucky set-
tlements— Hostility of the Indians excited by the British —
First political convention in the West — Capture of Boone's
daughter and the daughters of Colonel Callaway by the In-
dians— Their rescue by a party led by Boone and Callaway —
Increased caution of the colonists at Boonesborough — Alarm
and desertion of the Colonies in the West by land speculators
and other adventurers — A reinforcement of forty-five men
from North Carolina arrive at Boonesborough — Indian attack
on Boonesborough in April — Another attack in July — Attack
on Logan's Fort, and siege — Attack on Harrodsburg.
The reader will not fail to remark that the period
at which Daniel Boone commenced the settlement of
Kentucky, was the most eventful one in the history
of our country. In the year 1775 hostilities between
Great Britain and her American Colonies commenced-
at Lexington and Concord, and the whole country
was mustering in arms at the time when Boone and
the other western emigrants were forming settlement;,
(108)
HOSTILITY OF THE INDIAXS. 109
four hundred miles beyond the frontiers of Virgini a
and the Carolinas. Encouraged by the treaty of Lord
Dunmore with the Indians in 1774, and knowing the
Indian titles to' the lands they were occupying to have
been extinguished, they naturally counted on an un-
molested possession of the region they were settling.
But in this expectation they were sorely disappointed.
The English officers and agents in the northwest were
indefatigable in stimulating the Indians to attack the
American colonists in every quarter. They supplied
them with arms and ammunition, bribed them with
money, and aided and encouraged them to attack the
feeble settlements in Kentucky and Tennessee. But
Providence overruled these circumstances for the
benefit of the Western country. " The settlement of
Kentucky led to the conquest of the British posts
in Illinois and Indiana, in 1778, and eventually threw
the wide valleys of the West under control of the
American Union."*
The settlers in Kentucky in 1775, were still acting
under the belief that the claims purchased by Hen-
derson and Company from the Cherokees were valid,
and that " the Proprietors of the Colony of Transyl-
vania" were really founding a political State. Under
* Peck. "Life of Daniel Boone."
110 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
tliis impression they took leases from the Company,
and in the course of the year, eighteen delegates as-
sembled in convention at Boonesborough, and ac-
knowledged the Company as lawful proprietors,
" established courts of justice, and rules for proceed-
ing therein ; also a militia law, a law for the preser-
vation of game, and for appointing civil and militia
officers."* This was the first political convention
ever held in the Western Valley for the formation
of a free government.f
The winter and spring of 1776:}: were passed by the
little colony of Boonesborough in hunting, fishing,
clearing the lands immediately contiguous to the
station, and putting in a crop of corn. The colonists
were molested but once by their enemies during the
winter, when one man was killed by a small band of
marauding Indians, who suddenly appeared in the
vicinity, and as suddenly departed.
- Butler. " History of Kentucky."
f Peck. " Life of Daniel Boone."
% Mr. Peck mentions the spring of 1776, as the date of the
arrival at Boonesborough of Colonel Richard Callaway, and an
intimate friend of Boone, with his family, and the family of
Benjamin Logan, who had returned for them the preceding
autumn.
CAPTURE OF THREE FEMALES. Ill
In the middle summer month, an incident of a
thrilling character occurred, which cast a deep but
only momentary shadow upon the little society of
Boonesborough. This was the capture, by some
skulking Indians belonging to a numerous band who
were now prowling through the woods and brakes of
Kentucky, and occasionally approaching the settle-
ments for the purpose of plunder, of three young
females, members of the families of Boone a.nd Calla-
way.
This incident, which has been taken as the ground-
work of two or three western fictions, and also had
thrown around it all the warm coloring of romance,
by writers professing to deal only with the authentic,
is thus briefly related in the papers of Colonel John
Floyd, as quoted by Mr. Butler :
"On the 7th of July, 1776, the Indians took out
of a canoe which was in the river, within sight of
Boonesborough, Miss Betsey Callaway, her sister
Frances, and a daughter of Daniel Boone. The last
two were about thirteen or fourteen years of age, and
the other grown.
"The affair happened late in the afternoon, and the
spoilers left the canoe on the opposite side of the river
112 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
from us, which prevented our getting over for sonic
time to pursue them. Next morning by daylight we
were on the track, but found they had totally pre-
vented our following them by walking some distance
apart through the thickest cane they could find. "We
observed their course, however, and on which side they
had left their sign, and traveled upward of thirty
miles. We then imagined that they would be less
cautious in traveling, and made a turn in order to
cross their trace, and had gone but a few miles before
we found their tracks in a buffalo-path.
"Pursuing this for the distance of about ten miles,
we overtook them just as they were kindling a fire to
cook. Our study had been more to get the prisoner^
without giving their captors' time to murder them
after they should discover us, than to kill the Indians.
" We discovered each other nearly at the same time.
Four of our party fired, and then all rushed upon
them, which prevented their carrying any thing away
except one shot-gun without any ammunition. Mr.
Boone and myself had a pretty fair shot, just as they
began to move off. I am well convinced I shot one
through; the one he shot dropped his gun, mine had
none.
DEPARTURE OF SPECULATORS. 113
" The place was very thick with cane ; and being so
much elated on recovering the three little broken-
hearted girls, prevented our making any further
search. We sent them off without moccasins, and
not one of them with so much as a knife or a Toma-
hawk."
Although the people of the little colony of Boones-
borough were not aware of the fact at the time, the
marauding Indians who thus captured Miss Boone
and the Misses Callaway, as they were amusing them-
selves by paddling about the foot of the rock in the
canoe, were one of the many scouting parties of
Indians who were scattered about watching all the
different settlements in Kentucky, and preparing to
attack them. The incident of the capture of the girls
spread an alarm, and guards were stationed to defend
the hands who were engaged in cultivating the ground.
Toward autumn the alarm of Indian hostilities,
and the knowledge that war was raging throughout
the Colonies east of the mountains, excited so much
alarm, that some three hundred land speculators and
other adventurers deserted the Western country and
returned to their old homes*
8 * Peck.
114 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
With the exception of the capture of the young
girls mentioned above, no incident is recorded as
having disturbed the tranquillity of Boonesborough
during the year 1776. An occasional immigrant
added a new member to its little society, who assisted
in the labors of the hardy colonists on the surround-
ing grounds. But its numbers received no consider-
able increase till the following summer, when (25th
July, 1777,) a party of immigrants from North Caro-
lina, consisting of forty-five men, arrived in the
country, and took up their first abode in the wilder-
ness at Boonesborough.
This was a fortunate circumstance for that station,
and great cause of rejoicing among all the settlements,
for there were none of them that had not been much
molested by the Indians since the opening of spring,
and one or two of them had undergone long and
regular Indian sieges.
Boonesborough had been surrounded by about one
hundred of the enemy, as early as the middle of April,
1777, and fiercely attacked. But the Indians were so
warmly received by the garrison on this occasion,
that they in a very little time withdrew, having killed
SIEGE AND REPULSE OF THE INDIANS. 115
one of the settlers, and wounded four others. Their
own loss could not be ascertained.
Increased to two hundred warriors, this party had
returned to the attack of Boonesborough on the fourth
of July.* On the present occasion, having sent de-
tachments to alarm and annoy the neighboring settle-
ments, in order that no reinforcements should be sent
to Boonesborough, the Indians encamped about the
place, with the object of attempting its reduction by
a regular siege. After a close and vigorous attack
for two days and nights, in which they succeeded in
killing but one man and wounding four others, the
Indians, losing all hope of success, suddenly, and with
great clamor, raised the siege, and disappeared in the
adjacent forest. Their own loss was seven warriors,
whose fall was noted from the fort.
After this attack, Boonesborough was disturbed no
more by the Indians during the year. Had it been
after the arrival of the immigrants above referred to,
it would, in all probability, have taught its indefati-
gable enemies a lesson such as they had never then
received at the hands of the Kentuckians.
But notwithstanding these two considerable attacks,
* Gallagher.
116 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
and the "signs" of Indians in the surrounding forests
for the whole summer, the men continued to clear the
lands adjacent to the Station, and to cultivate corn and
garden vegetables, some always keeping a vigilant
look-out while the others labored. For supplies of
meat they depended upon the forests, each of the men
taking his turn as a hunter, at great hazard.
Meantime, the other settlements in Kentucky had
suffered attacks from the Indians. Logan's Fort was
invested by a force of one hundred Indians on the
20th of May, 1777, and after sustaining a vigorous
siege for several days, was finally relieved by the
timely arrival of a reinforcement commanded by Col-
onel Bowman. On the 7th of March, 1777, the fort
at Harrodsburg, then called Harrodstown, was assailed
by a body of Indians, but they were speedily driven
off, one of their number being killed. The whites
had four men wounded, one of whom afterward died
of his wounds.
CHAPTER XI.
Arrival of George Rogers Clark in Kentucky — Anecdote of hia
conversation with Ray — Clark and Jones chosen as delegates
for the Colonies to the Virginia Legislature — Clark's import-
ant services in obtaining a political organization for Kentucky,
and an abundant supply of gunpowder from the government
of Virginia — Great labor and difficulty in bringing the powder
to Harrodstown — Clark's expedition against Kaskaskias— Sur-
prise and capture of their fort — Perilous and difficult march
to Vincennes— Surprise and capture of that place — Extension
of the Virginian settlements — Erection of Fort Jefferson.
Among the most celebrated pioneers of the "West,
was General George Rogers Clark, who, at the time
we are now writing of, bore the rank of Major.
Anxious for the protection of the "Western settle-
ments, he was already planning his celebrated con-
quest of the British posts in the northwest.
He first came to Kentucky in 1775, and penetrated
to Harrodsburg, which had been reoccupied by Col-
onel Harrod. In this visit, from his well known and
commanding talents, he was voluntarily placed in
(117)
118 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
command of the irregular troops then in Kentucky.
In the fall he returned to Virginia, and came back
again to Kentucky in 1776. Mr. Butler relates the
following anecdote, received from the lips of General
Kay, as having occurred with General Clark upon his
second visit: "I had come down," said General Ray,
" to where I now live (about four miles north of Ilar-
rodsburg), to turn some horses in the range. I had
killed a small blue-wing duck that was feeding in my
spring, and had roasted it nicely on the brow of the
hill, about twenty steps east of my house. After
having taken it off to cool, I was much surprised on
being suddenly accosted by a fine soldierly-looking
man, who exclaimed, ' How do you do, my little fel-
low? What is your name? Ain't you afraid of
being in the woods by yourself?' On satisfying his
inquiries, I invited the traveler to partake of my
duck, which he did, without leaving me a bone to pick,
his appetite was so keen, though he should have been
welcome to all the game I could have killed, when I
afterward became acquainted with his noble and gal-
lant soul." After satisfying his questions, he inquired
of the stranger his own name and business in this re-
mote region. "My name is Clark," he answered,
I
DELEGATES CHOSEN. 119
" and I have come out to see what you brave fellows
are doing in Kentucky, and to lend you a helping
hand if necessar}'." General Ray, then a boy of six-
teen, conducted Clark to Harrodsburg, where he spent
his time in observation on the condition and prospects
of the country, natural to his comprehensive mind,
and assisting at every opportunity in its defense.
At a general meeting of the settlers at Harrodstown,
on the 6th of June, 1775, General George Rogers
Clark, and Gabriel John Jones, were chosen to repre-
sent them in the Assembly of Virginia.
This, however, was not precisely the thing contem-
plated by Clark* He wished that the people should
appoint agents, with general powers to negotiate with the
government of Virginia,and in the event that that com-
monwealth should refuse to recognize the colonists
as within its jurisdiction and under its protection, he
proposed to employ the lands of the country as a fund
to obtain settlers and establish an independent State.
The election had, however, gone too far to change its
object when Clark arrived at Harrodstown, and the
gentlemen elected, although aware that the choice
could give them no seat in the legislature, proceeded
* Collins.
120 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
to Williamsburg, at that time the seat of government.
After suffering the most severe privations in their
journey through the wilderness, the delegates found,
on their arrival in Virginia, that the Legislature had
adjourned, whereupon Jones directed his steps to the
settlements on the Holston, and left Clark to attend t-.»
the Kentucky mission alone.
He immediately waited on Governor Henry, then
lying sick at his residence in Hanover County, to
whom he stated the objects of his journey. These
meeting the approbation of the governor, he gave Clark
a letter to the Executive Council of the State. With
this letter in his hand he appeared before the council,
and after acquainting them fully with the condition
and circumstances of the colony, he made application
for five hundred-weight of gunpowder for the defense
of the various stations. But with every disposition to
assist and promote the growth of these remote and
infant settlements, the council felt itself restrained by
the uncertain and indefinite state of the relations ex-
isting between the colonists and the state of Virginia,
from complying fully with his demand. The Ken-
tuckians had not yet been recognized by the Legisla-
ture as citizens, and the proprietary claimants, Hen-
PROCEEDINGS OF CLARK WITH THE COUNCIL. 121
derson & Co., were at this time exerting themselves to
obtain from Virginia, a relinquishment of her jurisdic-
tion over the new territory. The council, therefore,
could only afford to lend the gunpowder to the colonists
as friends, not give it to them as felloiv-citizens.*
At the same time, they required Clark to be person-
ally responsible for its value, in the event the Legisla-
ture should refuse to recognize the Kentuckians as citi-
zens, and in the mean time to defray the expense of
its conveyance to Kentucky. Upon these terms he
did not feel at liberty to accept the proffered assistance.
He represented to the Council, that the emissaries of
the British were employing every means to engage the
Indians in the war ; that the people in the remote and
exposed Stations of Kentucky might be exterminated
for the want of a supply which he, a private individ-
ual, had at so much hazard and hardship, sought for
their relief, and that when this frontier bulwark was
thus destroyed, the fury of the savages would burst like
a tempest upon the heads of their own citizens.
To these representations, however, the Council re-
mained inexorable ; the sympathy for the frontier set-
tlers was deep, but the assistance already offered was
* Collins.
122 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
a stretch of power, and they could go no further. The
keeper of the public magazine was directed to deliver
the powder to Clark ; but having long reflected on the
situation, prospects, and resources of the new country,
his resolution to reject the assistance, on the proposed
conditions, was made before he left the Council chamber.
He determined to repair to Kentucky, as he had at
first contemplated, to exert the resources of the country
for the formation of an independent State. He accord-
ingly returned the order of the Council in a letter, set-
ting forth his reasons for declining to accept their
powder on these terms, and intimating his design of
applying for assistance elsewhere, adding " that a
country which was not worth defending was not worth
claiming." On the receipt of this letter the Council
recalled Clark to their presence, and an. order was
passed on the 23d of August, 1776, for the transmis-
sion of the gunpowder to Pittsburg, to be there
delivered to Clark, or his order, for the use of the
people of Kentucky. This was the first act in that
long and affectionate interchange of good offices which
subsisted between Kentucky and her parent State for
so many years; and obvious as the reflection is, it
may not be omitted, that on the successful termination
POLITICAL ORGANIZATION OF KENTUCKY. 123
of this negotiation hung the connection between Vir-
ginia and the splendid domain she afterward acquired
west of the Alleghany Mountains.
At the fall session of the Legislature of Virginia,
Messrs. Jones and Clark laid the Kentucky memorial
before that body. They were, of course, not admitted
to seats, though late in the session they obtained, in
opposition to the exertions of Colonels Henderson and
Campbell, the formation of the territory, which now
comprises the present State of that name, into the
County of Kentucky. The first efficient political
organization of Kentucky was thus obtained through
the sagacity, influence, and exertions of George Eogers
Clark, who must be ranked as the earliest founder of
that Commonwealth. This act of the Virginia Legis-
lature first gave it form and a political existence, and
entitled it, under the constitution of Virginia, to a
representation in the Assembly, as well as to a
judicial and military establishment.
Having obtained these important advantages from
their mission, they received the intelligence that the
powder was still at Pittsburg, and they determined to
take that point in their route home, and carry it with
them. The country around Pittsburg swarmed with
124 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
Indians, evidently hostile to the whites, who would
no doubt seek to interrupt their voyage.
These circumstances created a necessity for the
utmost caution as well as expedition in their move-
ments, and they accordingly hastily embarked on the
Ohio with only seven boatmen. They were hotly
pursued the whole way by Indians, but succeeded in
keeping in advance until they arrived at the mouth
of Limestone Creek, at the spot where the city of
Maysville now stands. They ascended -this creek a
short distance with their boat, and concealed their
cargo at different places in the woods along its banks.
They then turned their boat adrift, and directed their
course to Harrodstown, intending to return with a
sufficient escort to insure the safe transportation of
the powder to its destination. This in a short time
was successfully effected, and the colonists were thus
abundantly supplied with the means of defense against
the fierce enemies who beset them on all sides.*
It was fortunate for Virginia, says a recent writer, f
that she had at this time, on her western borders, an
individual of rare military genius, in the person of
* Colling. " Historical Sketches of Kentucky."
| Howe. "Historical Collections of Virginia."
EXPEDITION AGAINST KASKASKIAS. 125
Colonel George Rogers Clarke, " the Hannibal of the
West,'11 who not only saved her back settlements from
Indian fury, but planted her standard far beyond the
Ohio. The Governor of the Canadian settlements in
the Illinois country, by every possible method, msti*
gated the Indians to annoy the frontier.
Virginia placed a small force of about 250 men
under Clark, who, descending the Ohio, hid their
boats, and marched northwardly, with their provisions
on their backs. These being consumed,, they sub-
sisted for two days on roots, and, in a state of famine,
appeared before Kaskaskias, unseen and unheard.
At midnight they surprised and took the town and
fort, which had resisted a much larger force ; then
seizing the golden moment, sent a detachment who
with equal success surprised three other towns.
Rocheblave, the obnoxious Governor, was sent to
Virginia. On his person were found written instruc-
tions from Quebec to excite the Indians to hostilities,
and reward them for the scalps of the Americans.
The settlers transferred their allegiance to Virginia,
and she, as the territory belonged to her by conquest
and charter, in the autumnal session of 1778 erected
it into a county to be called Illinois. Insulated in the
m
126 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
heart of the Indian country, in the midst of the mosL
ferocious tribes, few men but Clark could have pre-
served this acquisition.
Hamilton, the Governor of Detroit, a bold and
tyrannical personage, determined, with an overwhelm-
ing force of British and Indians, to penetrate up the
Ohio to Fort Pitt to sweep all the principal settlements
in his way, and besiege Kaskaskias. Clark despaired
of keeping possession of the country, but he resolved
to preserve this post, or die in its defense. While he
was strengthening the fortifications, he received in-
formation that Hamilton, who was at Fort St. Vincent,
(Vincennes,) had weakened his force by sending some
Indians against the frontiers.
This information, to the genius of Clark, disclosed,
with the rapidity of an electric flash, not only safety
but new glory. To resolve to attack Hamilton before
he could collect the Indians was the work of a mo-
ment— the only hope of saving the country. With a
band of 150 gallant and hardy comrades, he marched
across the country. It was in February, 1779. When
within nine miles of the enemy, it took these intrepid
men five days to cross the drowned lands of the
Wabash, having often to wade up to their breasts
CAPTUKE OF FORT ST. VINCENT. 127
in water. Had not the weather been remarkably
mild, they must have perished.
On the evening of the 23d, they landed in sight
of the fort, before the enemy knew any thing of
their approach. After a siege of eighteen hours it
surrendered, without the loss of a man to the be-
siegers. The Governor was sent prisoner to "Wil-
liamsburg, and considerable stores fell into the pos
session of the conqueror.
Other auspicious circumstances crowned this re-
sult. Clark, intercepting a convoy from Canada, on
their way to this post, took the mail, forty prisoners,
and goods to the value of $45,000; and to crown
all, his express from "Virginia arrived with the
thanks of the Assembly to him and his gallant
band for their reduction of the country about Kas-
kaskias. This year Yirginia extended her western'
establishments through the agency of Colonel Clark, ^
and had several fortifications erected, among which1
was Fort Jefferson, on the Mississippi*
* Howe.
CHAPTER XII. -
Scarcity of salt at Boonesborough — Boone goes to Blue Licks to
make salt, and is captured by the Indians — Taken to Cliilli-
cotlie — Affects contentment, and deceives the Indians — Taken
to Detroit — Kindess of the British officers to him — Returns to
Chilllcothe — Adopted into an Indian family — Ceremonies of
adoption — Boone sees a large force of Indians destined to
attack Boonesborough — Escapes, and gives the alarm, and
strengthens the fortifications at Boonesborough — News of
delay by the Indians on account of Boone's escape — Boone
goes on an expedition to the Scioto — Has a fight with a party
ot Indians — Returns to Boonesborough, which is immediately
besieged by Captain Duquesne with five hundred Indians —
Summons to surrender — Time gained — Attack commenced — ■
Brave defense — Mines and countermines — Siege raised — Boono
brings his family once more back to Boonesborough, and re-
sumes farming.
"While George Rogers Clark was engaged in his
campaign against the British posts in the northwest,
Daniel Boone was a prisoner among the Indians.
The people at Boonesborough were suffering for want
of salt. It could not be obtained conveniently from
(128)
boone's second captivity. 129
the Atlantic Colonies, but it could be manufactured
at a place called the Blue Licks, from salt water,
which abounded there.
In January, 1778, accompanied by thirty men,
Boone went to the Blue Licks to make salt for the
different Stations; and on the 7th of February follow-
ing, while out hunting, he fell in with one hundred
and two Indian warriors, on their march to attack
Boonesborough. He instantly fled, but being upward
of fifty years old, he was unable to outstrip the fleet
young men who pursued him, and was a second time
taken prisoner. As usual, he was treated with kind-
ness until his final fate should be determined, and
was led back to the Licks, where his party were still
encamped. Here Boone surrendered his whole party,
to the number of twenty-seven, upon a promise on
the part of the Indians of life and good treatment,
both of which conditions were faithfully observed.
This step was apparently unnecessary ; but the result
showed that it was a master-stroke of policy on
Boone's part. He knew the nature of the Indians,
and foresaw that they would forthwith return home
with their prisoners, and thus save Boonesborough
from attack.
9
130 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
Had the Indians gone on to that place, by showing
their prisoners and threatening to put them to the
torture, they might have obtained important results.
But they did nothing of the kind. As Boone had
calculated, they went home with their prisoners and
booty.
Captain Boone has been censured for the surrender
of his men, which he made at his own capture, and at
a subsequent period was tried by court-martial and
acquitted. This was a just decision. The surrender
caused the Indians to return home with their pris-
oners instead of attacking Boonesborough, which
would almost certainly have been taken and de-
stroyed if this surrender had not been made.
Elated with their unexpected success, the Indians
now returned at once to old Chilicothe, the principal
town of the Shawnees, on the Little Miami, treating
their prisoners, during a march of three days in very
cold and inclement weather, as well as they fared
themselves, as regarded fire and provisions. Boone
and his companions were kept in captivity by the
Indian^, and closely watched for several weeks, when
the old pioneer and ten of his men were conducted to
Detroit, then a British garrison, and all but Boone
ADOPTED INTO AN INDIAN FAMILY. 131
presented to the commandant, by whom they were all
"well treated. For the old pioneer himself, the Indians
had conceived a particular liking; and they stub-
bornly refused to give him up, though several gentle-
men of Detroit were very anxious they should leave
him, and the commandant offered to ransom him by a
liberal sum. He was therefore compelled to accom-
pany them back to Chillicothe, their town on the
Tattle Miami, which they reached after a march of
fifteen days.
Boone was now formally adopted as a son in one
of the Indian families. " The forms of the ceremony
of adoption," says Mr. Peck,* " were often severe and
ludicrous. The hair of the head is plucked out by a
painful and tedious operation, leaving a tuft, some
three or four inches in diameter, on the crown, for the
scalp-lock, which is cut and dressed up with ribbons
and feathers. The candidate is then taken into the
river in a state of nudity, and there thoroughly washed
and rubbed, ' to take all his white blood out.' This
ablution is usually performed by females. He is then
taken to the council-house, where the chief nMkes a
speech, in which he expatiates upon the distinguished
* " Life of Daniel Boone."
1.32 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
honors conferred on him. His head and face are
painted in the most approved and fashionable style,
and the ceremony is concluded with a grand feast and
smoking."
After undergoing after this fashion what was not
inaptly termed the Indian toilette, Boone was con-
sidered a regular member of the tribe, and by judi-
ciously accommodating himself to his new condition,
he rapidly won upon the regards of the Indians, and
soon secured their confidence. They challenged him
to a trial of skill at their shooting-matches — in which
he took care not to excel them — invited him to ac-
company them on their hunting excursions, bestowed
particular notice upon him in various ways, and
always treated him with much consideration. As re-
garded merely his physical comfort, Boone's situation
was, at this time, rather enviable than otherwise ; but
he felt a depressing anxiety with regard to his wife
and children, and doubted the safety and prosperity
of the Station, without his own watchfulness and
superintendence. He therefore determined to escape
from his captors at the earliest possible period, and
very impatiently waited an opportunity for accom-
plishing this purpose.
ESCAPE FKOM THE INDIANS., 133
Early in June, a party of Indians went to the Scioto
Licks to make salt. Boone was taken with them, but
kept so constantly employed at the kettles, that he
found no chance of escaping. Having sufficiently sup-
plied themselves with the desired article, the party re-
turned ; and at the Ohillicothe town, Boone found four
hundred and fifty Indian warriors, armed well and
painted in a most frightful manner., ready to march
against Boonesborough : this was on the fifteenth or
sixteenth of the month.
Boone now saw the absolute necessity of escaping
at once, and determined to make the attempt without
delay. He rose at the usual time the next morning,
and went out upon a hunt. His object was to give
his wary masters the slip, in such a manner as would
be least likely to excite their suspicions, and be the
longest in determining them upon a pursuit.
No sooner was he at such a distance from the town
as would prevent observations of his movements, than
he struck out rapidly in the direction of Boones-
borough. So great was his anxiety, that he stopped
not to kill any thing to eat; but performed his journey
— a distance of one hundred and sixty miles — in less
than five days, upon one meal, which, before starting,
134 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
he had concealed in his basket. On arriving at
Boonesborough, he found the fort, as he feared he
should, in a bad state for defense ; but his activity soon
strengthened it, and his courage at once reinspired the
sinking hearts of the garrison. Every thing was* im-
mediately put in proper condition for a vigorous de-
fense, and all became impatient for intelligence of the
movements of the enemy.
A few days after Boone's escape from the Indians,
one of his fellow-prisoners succeeded likewise in elud-
ing their vigilance, and made his way safely and ex-
peditiously to Boonesborough. This man arrived at
the Station at a time when the garrison were hourly
expecting the appearance of the enemy, and reported
that, on account of Boone's elopement, the Indians had
postponed their meditated invasion of the settled re-
gions for three weeks* It was discovered, however,
that they had their spies in the country, watching the
movements of the different garrisons ; and this rendered
the settlers wary and active, and gave all the Sations
time and opportunity to strengthen themselves, and
make every preparation for a powerful resistance of
what, they could not but believe, was to be a long and
< * Gallagher.
A FIGHT WITH THE INDIANS. 135
great effort to drive them from the land, and utterly
destroy their habitations.
Week passed after week, but no enemy appeared.
The state of anxiety and watchfulness in which the
garrison at Boonesborough had, for so long a time, been
kept, was becoming irksome, and the men were begin-
ning to relax in their vigilance. This Boone observed,
and it determined him to undertake an expedition,
which he had been probably meditating for some time.
On the 1st of August, therefore, with a company of
nineteen of the brave spirits by whom he was sur-
rounded, he left the fort with the intention of marching
against and surprising one of the Indian towns on the
Scioto. He advanced rapidly, but with great caution,
and had reached a point within four or five miles of
the town destined to taste of his vengeance, when he
met its warriors, thirty in number, on their way to
join the main Indian force, then on its march toward
Boonesborough
An action immediately commenced, which termi-
nated in the flight of the Indians, who lost one man
and had two others wounded.
Boone received no injury, but took three horses,
and all the "plunder" of the war party. He then
136 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
dispatched two spies to, the Indian town, who re-
turned with the intelligence that it was evacuated.
On the receipt of this information, he started for
Boonesborough with all possible haste, hoping tc
reach the -Station before the enemy, that he might
give warning of their approach, and strengthen its
numbers. He passed the main body of the Indians
on the sixth day of his march, and on the seventh
reached Boonesborough.
On the eighth day, the enemy's force marched up,
with British colors flying, and invested the place.
The Indian army was commanded by Captain Du
quesne, with eleven other Canadian Frenchmen and
several distinguished chiefs, and was the most formid-
able force which had yet invaded the settlements.
The commander summoned the garrison to surrender
" in the name of his Britannic Majesty."
Boone and his men, perilous as was their situation,
received the summons without apparent alarm, and
requested a couple of days for the consideration of
what should be done. This was granted; and Boone
summoned his brave companions to council : but fifty
men appeared! Yet these fifty, after a due considera-
tion of the terms of capitulation proposed, and with
ATTACK UPON BOONESBOBOUGH. 137
the knowledge that they were surrounded by savage
and remorseless enemies to the number of about five
hundred, determined, unanimously, to " defend the fort
as long as a man of them lived/"
The two days having expired, Boone announced
this determination from one of the bastions, and
thanked the British commander for the notice given
of his intended attack, and the time allowed the gar-
rison for preparing to defend the Station. This reply
to his summons was entirely unexpected by Duquesne,
and he heard it with evident disappointment. Other
terms were immediately proposed by him, which
"sounded so gratefully in the ears" of the garrison
that Boone agreed to treat ; and, with eight of his
companions, left the fort for this purpose. It was soon
manifest, however, by the conduct of the Indians, that
a snare had been laid for them ; and escaping from
their wily foes by a sudden effort, they re-entered the
pallisides, closed the gates, and betook themselves to
the bastions.
A hot attack upon the fort now instantly com-
menced ; but the fire of the Indians was returned
from the garrison with such unexpected briskness and
fatal precision that the besiegers were' compelled to fall
138 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
back. They then sheltered themselves behind the
nearest trees and stumps, and continued the attack
with more caution. Losing a number of men himself,
and perceiving no falling off in the strength or the
marksmanship of the garrison, Duquesne resorted to
an expedient which promised greater success.
The fort stood upon the bank, of the river, about
sixty yards from its margin ; and the purpose of the
commander of the Indians was to undermine this, and
blow up the garrison. Duquesne was pushing the
mine under the fort with energy when his operations
were discovered by the besieged. The miners precipi-
tated the earth which they excavated into the river ;
and Boone, perceiving that the water was muddy be-
low the fort, while it was clear above, instantly divined
the cause, and at once ordered a deep trench to be cut
inside the fort, to counteract the work of the enemy.
As the earth was dug up, it was thrown over the
wall of the fort, in the face of the besieging com-
mander. Duquesne was thus informed that his design
had been discovered; and being convinced cf the
futility of any further attempts of that kind, he dis-
continued his mining operations, and once more re-
newed the attack upon the Station in the manner of
THE SIEGE EAISED. 139
a regular Indian siege. His success, however, was no
better than it had been before ; the loss appeared to
be all upon his side; his stock of provisions was
nearly exhausted; having for nine days tried the
bravery of his savage force, and tasked his own in-
genuity to its utmost, he raised the siege, and aban-
doned the grand object of the expedition.
During this siege, "the most formidable," says Mr.
Marshall, " that had ever taken place in Kentucky,
from the number of Indians, the skill of the com-
manders, and the fierce countenances and savage dis-
positions of the warriors," only two men belonging
to the Station were killed, and four others wounded.
Duquesne lost thirty-seven men, and had many
wounded, who, according to the invariable usage of
the Indians, were immediately borne from the scene
of action.
Boonesborough was never again disturbed- by any
formidable body of Indians. New Stations were
springing up every year between it and the Ohio
Eiver, and to pass beyond these for the purpose of
striking a blow at an older and stronger enemy, was
a piece of folly of which the Indians were never known
to be guilty.
140 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
During Boone's captivity among the Shawnees, his
family, supposing that he had been killed, had left
the Station and returned to their relatives and friends
in North Carolina ; and as early in the autumn as he
could well leave, the brave and hardy warrior started
to move them out again to Kentucky. He returned
to the settlement with them early the next summer,
and set a good example to his companions by indus-
triously cultivating his farm, and volunteering his
assistance, whenever it seemed needed, to the many im-
migrants who were now pouring into the country, and
erecting new Stations in the neighborhood of Boones-
borough. He was a good as well as a great man in
his sphere, says Mr. Gallagher, (our chief authority
for the foregoing incidents); and for his many and
important services in the early settlements of Ken-
tucky, he well deserved the title of Patriarch which
was bestowed upon him during his life, and all the
praises that have been sung to his memory since hia
death.*
* W. D. Gallagher, in "Hesperian."
CHAPTER XIII.
Captain Boone tried by court-martial — Honorably acquitted and
promoted — Loses a large sum of money — His losses by law-
suits and disputes about land — Defeat of Colonel Rogers's
party — Colonel Bowman's expedition to Chillicotbe — Arrival
near the town — Colonel Logan attacks tbe town — Ordered by
Colonel Bowman to retreat — Failure of tbe expedition — Con-
sequences to Bowman and to Logan.
Some complaint having been made respecting Cap-
tain Boone's surrender of his party at the Blue Licks,
and other parts of his military conduct, his friends
Colonel Richard Callaway and Colonel Benjamin
Logan, exhibited charges against him which occa-
sioned his being tried by court-martial. This was
undoubtedly done with a view to put an end to the
calumny by disproving or explaining the charges.
The result of the trial was an honorable acquittal,
increased popularity of the Captain among his fellow-
citizens, and his promotion to the rank of Major*
While Boone had been a prisoner among the In
* Peck.
(141)
142 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
dians, his wife and family, supposing him to be dead,
had returned to North Carolina. In the autumn of
1778 he went after them to the house of Mrs. Boone's
father on the Yadkin.
In 1779, a commission having been opened by the
Virginia Legislature to settle Kentucky land claims,
Major Boone "laid out the chief of his little property
to procure land warrants, and having raised about
twenty thousand dollars in paper money, with which
he intended to purchase them, on his way from Ken-
tucky to Richmond, he was robbed of the whole, and
left destitute of the means of procuring more. This
heavy misfortune did not fall on himself alone. Large
sums had been intrusted to him by his friends for
similar purposes, and the loss was extensively felt."
Boone must have suffered much anxiety in conse-
quence of this affair. Little is known respecting it,
excepting that it did not impair the confidence of his
friends in his perfect integrity.
This appears in the following extract of a letter
from Colonel Thomas Hart, late of Lexington, Ken-
tucky, to Captain Nathaniel Hart, dated Grayfields,
August 3d, 1780.
" I observe what you say respecting our losses by
SEVEKE L0SSE3. 143
Daniel Boone. [Boone had been robbed of funds in
part belonging to T. and N. Hart.] I had heard of
the misfortune soon after it happened, but not of my
being partaker before now. I feel for the poor people
who, perhaps, are to lose even their pre-emptions : but
I must say, I feel more for Boone, whose character, I
am told, suffers by it. Much degenerated must the
people of this age be, when amongst them are to be
found men to censure and blast the reputation of a
person so just and upright, and in whose breast is a
seat of virtue too pure to admit of a thought so base
and dishonorable. I have known Boone in times of
old, when poverty and distress had him fast by the
hand : and in these wretched circumstances, I have
ever found him of a noble and generous soul, de-
spising every thing mean ; and therefore I will freely
grant him a discharge for whatever sums of mine he
might have been possessed of at the time."
Boone's ignorance of legal proceedings, and his
aversion to lawsuits, appear to have occasioned the
loss of his real estate; and the loose manner in which
titles were granted, one conflicting with another, oc-
casioned similar losses to much more experienced and
careful men at the same period.
144 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
J During the year 1779 the emigration to Kentucky
was much greater than any previous one. The set-
tlers do not seem to have been so much annoyed by
the Indians as formerly. Yet this year is distinguished
in the annals of Kentucky for the most bloody battle
ever fought between the whites and Indians within her
borders, with the single exception of that of the Blue
Licks.
It took* place opposite to Cincinnati. Colonel Eo-
gers had been down to New Orleans to procure sup-
plies for the posts on the Upper Mississippi and Ohio.
Having obtained them, he ascended these rivers until
he reached the place mentioned above. Here he found
the Indians in their canoes cominsr out of the mouth
of the Little Miami, and crossing to the Kentucky
side of the Ohio. He conceived the plan of surprising
them as they landed. The Ohio was very low on the
Kentucky side, so that a large sand-bar was laid bare,
extending along the shore. Upon this Kogers landed
his men, but, before they could reach the spot where
they expected to attack the enemy, they were them-
selves attacked by such superior numbers that the
issue of the contest was not doubtful for a single mo-
ment. Rogers and the greater part of his men were
EXPEDITION TO CHILLICOTHE. 145
instantly killed. The few who were left fled toward
the boats. But one of them was already in the pos-
session of the Indians, whose flanks were extended in
advance of the fugitives, and the few men remaining
in the other pushed off from shore without waiting to
take their comrades on- board. These last now turned
around upon their pursuers, and, furiously charging
them, a small number broke through their ranks and
escaped to Harrodsburg. The loss in this most lament-
able affair was about sixty men, very nearly equal to
that at Blue Licks.
The Kentuckians resolved to invade the Indian
country, and Chillicothe was selected as the point to
feel the weight of their vengeance. Colonel Bowman
issued a call, inviting all those who were willing to
accompany him in the expedition to rendezvous at
Harrodsburg. This was the manner of organizing
such expeditions in Kentucky. An officer would
invite volunteers to participate with him in an incur-
sion into the Indian country. All who joined were
expected to submit to his direction.
On this occasion there was no want of zeal among
the people. Bowman's reputation as a soldier was
good, and three hundred men were soon collected,
10
146 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
among whom were Logan and Harrod; both holding
the rank of captain. It does not appear that either
Boone or Kenton engaged in this enterprise. Indeed,
the first is said to have been absent in North Carolina
his family having returned there after his capture in
the preceding year, supposing him to be dead.
The expedition moved in the month of July- — its
destination well known — and its march so well con-
ducted that it approached its object without discovery.
From this circumstances, it would seem that the In-
dians were but little apprehensive of an invasion from
those who had never before ventured on it, and whom
they were in the habit of invading annually ; or else
so secure in their own courage that they feared no
enemy, for no suspecting spy was out to foresee ap-
proaching danger. Arrived within a short distance
of the town, night approached, and Colonel Bowman
halted. Here it was determined to invest and attack
the place just before the ensuing day, and several dis-
positions were then made very proper for the occa-
sion, indicating a considerable share of military skill
and caution, which gave reasonable promise of a suc-
cessful issue. At a proper hour the little army sep-
arated, after a movement that placed it near the town ;
ATTACK UPON CHILLICOTHE. 147
the one part, under the command of Bowman in
person — the other, under Captain Logan ; to whom
precise orders had been given to march, on the one
hand, half round the town ; while the Colonel, passing
the other way, was to meet him, and give the signal
for an assault. Logan immediately executed his or-
ders, and the place was half enveloped. But he neither
saw nor heard the commander-in-chief. Logan now
ordered his men to conceal themselves in the grass and
weeds, and behind such other objects as were present,
as the day began to show itself, and he had not yet
received the expected order to begin the attack ; nor
had he been able, though anxious, to ascertain what
had intercepted or delayed his superior officer. The
men, on shifting about for hiding-places, had alarmed
one of the Indians' dogs, who forthwith set to barking
with the agitation of apparent fright. This brought
out an Indian warrior, who proceeded with caution on
the way that the dog seemed to direct his own atten-
tion, and in a short time, if he had continued his
progress, might have been made a prisoner ; but, at
this critical moment, one of the party with the Colonel
fired his gun; which-the Indian, well understanding
as coming from an enemy, gave an instantaneous and
148 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
loud whoop, and ran immediately to his cabin. The
alarm was instantly spread through the town, and
preparation made for defense. The party with Logan
was near enough to hear the bustle and to see the
women and children escapiug to the cover of the
woods by a ridge which ran between them and where
Colonel Bowman with his men had halted.
In the mean time, the warriors equipped them-
selves with their military habiliments, and repaired to
a strong cabin ; no doubt, designated in their councils
for the like occurrences. By this time daylight had
disclosed the whole scene, and several shots were dis-
charged on the one side, and returned from the other ;
while some of Logan's men took possession of a few
cabins, from which the Indians had retreated — or
rather perhaps it should be said, repaired to their
stronghold, the more effectually to defend themselves.
The scheme was formed by Logan, and adopted by
his men in the cabins, of making a movable breast-
work out of the doors and floors — and of pushing it
forward as a battery against the cabin in which the
Indians had taken post; others of them had taken
shelter from the fire of the enemy behind stumps, or
iogs, or the vacant cabins, and were waiting orders ;
FAILURE OF THE EXPEDITION. 149
when the Colonel finding that the Indians were on
their defense, dispatched orders for a retreat. This
oraer, received with astonishment, was obeyed with
reluctance ; and what rendered it the more distressing,
was the nnavoidable exposure which the men must
encounter in the open field, or prairie, which sur-
rounded the town : for they were apprized that from
the moment they left their cover, the Indians would
fire on them, until they were beyond the reach of
their balls. A retreat, however, was deemed neces-
sary, and every man was to shift for himself. Then,
instead of one that was orderly, commanding, or sup-
ported— a scene of disorder, unmilitary and mortify-
ing, took place : here a little squad would rush out
of, or break from behind a cabin — there individuals
would rise from a log, or start up from a stump, and
run with all speed to gain the neighboring wood.
At length, after the loss of several lives, the rem-
nant of the invading force was reunited, and the re-
treat continued in tolerable order, under the painful
reflection that the expedition had failed, without any
adequate cause being known. This was, however,
but the introduction to disgrace, if not of misfortune
still more extraordinary and distressing. The Indian
150 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
warriors, commanded by Blackfish, sallied from the
town, and commenced a pursuit of the discomfited in-
vaders of their forests and firesides, which they con-
tinued for some miles, harassing and galling the rear
of the fugitives without being checked, notwithstand-
ing the disparity of numbers. There not being more
than thirty of the savages in pursuit. Bowman, find-
ing himself thus pressed, at length halted his men in
a low piece of ground covered with brush ; as if he
sought shelter from the enemy behind or among them.
A situation more injudiciously chosen, if chosen at all,
cannot be easily imagined — since of all others, it most
favored the purposes of the Indians. In other re-
spects the commander seems also to have lost his un-
derstanding— he gave no orders to fire — made no de-
tachment to repulse the enemy, who, in a few min-
utes, by the whoops, yells, and firing, were heard on
all sides — but stood as a mark to be shot at, or one
panic struck. Some of the men fired, but without
any precise object, for the Indians were scattered, and
hid by the grass and bushes. What would have been
the final result it is difficult to conjecture, if Logan,
Harrod, Bulger, and a few others, had not mounted
some of the pack-horses and scoured the woods, first
BOWMAN AND LOGAN. 151
in one direction then in another; rushing on the
Indians wherever they could find them, until very
fortunately Blackfish was killed; and this being soon
known, the rest fled. It was in the evening when
this event occurred, which being reported to the col-
onel, he resumed his march at dark — taking for his
guide a creek near at hand, which he pursued all
night without any remarkable occurrence — and in
quiet and safety thence returned home, with the loss
of nine men killed and another wounded: having
taken two Indian scalps: which, however, was thought
a trophy of small renown."
A somewhat different account is given by some, in
which Bowman is exculpated from all blame. Ac-
cording to this, it was the vigorous defense of the In-
dians which prevented him from fulfilling his part of
the combinations. Be this as it may, it is certain that
Bowman lost reputation by the expedition; while, on
the other hand, the conduct of Logan raised him still
higher in the estimation of the people.
CHAPTEE XIV.
Invasion of Kentucky by Captain Byrd's party — He captures
the garrisons at Ruddle's Station and Martin's Fort — Colonel
Clark's invasion of tlie Indian country — He ravages the In-
dian towns — Adventure of Alexander McConnell — Skirmish at
Pickaway — Result of the expedition — Boone goes to the Blue
Licks with his brother — Attacked by the Indians — Boone's
brother killed — Boone promoted to the rank of Lieutenant-
Colonel — Clark's galley — Squire Boone's Station removed to
Bear's Creek — Attack by the Indians — Colonel Floyd's defeat
— Affair of the McAfees — Attack on McAfee's Station repelled
— Fort Jefferson evacuated — Attack on Montgomery Station — -
Rescue by General Logan.
The year 1780 was distinguished for two events of
much importance ; the invasion of Kentucky by the
British and Indians, under Colonel Byrd ; and Gen-
eral Clark's attack upon the Shawanee towns. The
first of these, was a severe and unexpected blow to
Kentucky. Marshall says, that the people in their
eagerness to take up land, had almost forgotten the
existence of hostilities. Fatal security ! and most fatal
(152)
btrd's invasion. 153
with sucli a foe, whose enterprises were conducted,
with such secrecy that their first announcement was
their presence in the midst of the unprepared settle-
ment. In fact, the carelessness of the Western bor-
derers is often unaccountable, and this is not the least
surprising instance of it.
That they did not anticipate an attempt to retaliate
the incursion of Bowman into the Indian country, is
indeed astonishing. It was very fortunate for the
Kentuckians that their enemies were as little gifted
with perseverance, as they were with vigilance. This
remark is to be understood in a restricted sense, of
both parties. When once aroused to a sense of their
danger none were more readily prepared, or more
watchful to meet it than the settlers ; and on the other
hand, nothing could exceed the perseverance of the
Indians in the beginning of their enterprises, but on
the slightest success (not reverse) they wished to re-
turn to exhibit their trophies at home. Thus, on
capturing Boone and his party, instead of pushing on
and attacking the settlements which were thus weak-
ened, they returned to display their prisoners.
The consequences were that these defects neutralized
each other, and no very decisive strokes were made by
154 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
either side. But the English Governor Hamilton, who
had hitherto contented himself with stimulating the
Indians to hostilities, now aroused by the daring and
success of Clark, prepared to send a powerful expedi-
tion by way of retaliation, against the settlements.
Colonel Byrd was selected to command the forces,
which amounted to six hundred men, Canadians and
Indians. To render them irresistible, they were sup-
plied with two pieces of artillery. The posts on the
Licking were the first objects of the expedition.
In June they made their appearance before Buddie's
station ; and this, it is said, was the first intimation
that the garrison had received of their danger, though
Butler states that the enemy were twelve days on their
march from the Ohio. The incidents of the invasion
are few. The fort at Buddie's Station was in no con-
dition to resist so powerful an enemy backed by ar-
tillery, the defenses being nowise superior to those we
have before described.
They were summoned to surrender in the name of
his Britannic Majesty, with the promise of protection
for their lives only. "What could they do ? The idea
of resisting such a force was vain. The question pre-
sented itself to them thus. Whether they should sur-
martin's fort captured. 155
render at once and give up their property, or enrage
the Indians by a fruitless resistance, and lose their
property and lives also. The decision was quickly
made, the post was surrendered and the enemy
thronged in, eager for plunder. The inmates of the
fort were instantly seized, families were separated ; for
each Indian caught the first person whom he met, and
claimed him or her as his prisoner. Three who made
some resistance, were killed upon the spot. It was in
vain that the settlers remonstrated with the British
commander. He said it was impossible to restrain them.
This doubtless was true enough, but he should have
thought of it before he assumed the command of such
a horde, and consented to lead them against weak set-
tlements.
The Indians demanded to be led at once against
Martin's Fort, a post about five miles distant. Some
say that the same scene was enacted over here; but
another account states that so strongly was Colonel
Byrd affected by the barbarities of the Indians, that he
refused to advance further, unless they would consent
to allow him to take charge of all the prisoners who
should be taken. The same account goes on to say
that the demand was complied with, and that on the
156 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
surrender of Martin's Fort, this arrangement was ac-
tually made; the Indians taking possession of the
property and the British of the prisoners. However
this may be, the capture of this last-mentioned place,
which was surrendered under the same circumstances
as Ruddle's, was the lasf. operation of that campaign.
Some quote this as an instance of weakness ; Butler,
in particular, contrasts it with the energy of Clark.
The sudden retreat of the enemy inspired the people
with joy as great as their consternation had been at the
news of his unexpected advance. Had he pressed on,
there is but little doubt that all the Stations would
have fallen into his hands, for there were not men
•enough to spare from them to meet him in the field.
The greatest difficulty would have been the carriage of
the artillery. The unfortunate people who had fallen
into the hands of the Indians at Ruddle's Station, were
obliged to accompany their captors on their rapid re-
treat, heavily laden with the plunder of their own
dwellings. Some returned after peace was made, but
too many, sinking under the fatigues of the journey,
perished by the tomahawk.
Soon after the retreat of the enemy, General Clark,
who was stationed at Fort Jefferson, called upon the
clark's invasion. 157
Kentuckians to join him in an invasion of the Indian
country. The reputation of Clark caused the call to
be responded to with great readiness. A thousand
men were collected, with whom Clark entered and
devastated the enemy's territory. The principal towns
were burned and the fields laid waste. But one skir-
mish was fought, and that at the Indian village of
Pickaway. The loss was the same on both sides,
seventeen men being killed in each army. Some
writers who have not the slightest objection to war,
very gravely express doubts as to whether the expe-
dient of destroying the crops of the Indians was justi-
fiable. It is generally treated by these men as if it
was a wanton display of a vindictive spirit, when in
reality it was dictated by the soundest policy; for
when the Indians' harvests were destroyed, they were
compelled to subsist their families altogether by hunt-
ing, and had no leisure for their murderous inroads
upon the settlements. This result was plainly seen on
this occasion, for it does not appear that the Indians
attacked any of the settlements during the remainder
of this year.
An adventure which occurred in the spring, but
was passed over for the more important operations of
158 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the campaign, claims our attention, presenting as it
does a picture of the varieties of this mode of warfare.
We quote from McClung :
" Early in the spring of 1780, Mr. Alexander Mc-
Oonnel, of Lexington, Kentucky, went into the woods
on foot to hunt deer. He soon killed a large buck,
and returned home for a horse in order to bring it in.
During his absence a party of five Indians, on one of
their usual skulking expeditions, accidentally stum-
bled on the body of the deer, and perceiving that it
had been recently killed, they naturally supposed that
the hunter would speedily return to secure the flesh-
Three of them, therefore, took their stations within
close rifle-shot of the deer, while the other two followed
the trail of the hunter, and waylaid the path by which
he was expected to return. McConnel, expecting no
danger, rode carelessly along the path, which the two
scouts were watching, until he had come within view
of the deer, when he was fired upon by the whole
party, and his horse killed. While laboring to extri-
cate himself from the dying animal, he was seized by
his enemies, instantly overpowered, and borne cff as
a prisoner.
u His captors, however, seemed to be a merry, good-
m'connel's adyentuke. 159
uatured set of fellows, and permitted him to accom-
pany them unbound ; and, what was rather extraor
dinary, allowed him to retain his gun and hunting
accoutrements. He accompanied them writh great
apparent cheerfulness through the day, and displayed
his dexterity in shooting deer for the use of the com-
pany, until they began .to regard him with great par-
tiality. Having traveled with them in this manner
for several days, they at length reached the banks of
the Ohio Eiver. Heretofore the Indians had taken
the precaution to bind him at night, although not very
securely; but, on that evening, he remonstrated with
them on the subject, and complained so strongly of
the pain which the cords gave him, that they merely
wjapped the buffalo tug loosely around his wrists, and
having tied it in an easy knot, and attached the extremi-
ties of the rope to their own bodies in order to prevent
his moving without awakening them, they very com-
posedly went to sleep, leaving the prisoner to follow
their example or not, as he pleased.
" McConnel determined to effect his escape that
night if possible, as on the following night they would
cross the river, which would render it much more
difficult. He therefore lay quietly until near mid-
LGO LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
night, anxiously ruminating upon the best means of
effecting his object. Accidentally casting his eyes in
the direction of his feet, they fell upon the glittering
blade of a knife, which had escaped its sheath, and was
now lying near the feet of one of the Indians. To
reach it with his hands, without disturbing the two
Indians to whom he was fastened, was impossible, and
it was very hazardous to attempt to draw it up with
his feet. This, however, he attempted. With much
difficulty he grasped the blade between his toes, and,
after repeated and long-continued efforts, succeeded at
length in bringing it within reach of his hands.
" To cut his cords was then but the work of a mo-
ment, and gradually and silently extricating his person
from the arms of the Indians, he walked to the fire
and sat down. He saw that his work was but half
done. That if he should attempt to return home
without destroying his enemies, he would assuredly be
pursued and probably overtaken, when his fate would
be certain, f n ""he otner hand, it seemed almost im-
possible for a single man to succeed in a conflict with
five Indians, even although unarmed and asleep. He
could not hope to deal a blow with his knife so silently
and fatally as to destroy each one of his enemies in
m'connel's adventure. 161
fcnrn without awakening the rest. Their slumbers
were proverbially light and restless ; and, if he failed
w itli a single one, he must instantly be overpowered
by the survivors. The knife, therefore, was out of
the question.
"After anxious reflection for a few minutes, he
formed his plan. The guns of the Indians were
stacked near the fire ; their knives and tomahawks
were in sheaths by their sides. The latter he dared
not touch for fear of awakening their owners ; but the
former he carefully removed, with the exception of
two. and hid them in the woods, where he knew the
Indians would not readily find them. He then re-
turned to the spot where the Indians were still sleeping,
perfectly ignorant of the fate preparing for them, and,
taking a gun in each hand, he rested the muzzles upon
a log within six feet of his victims, and, having taken
deliberate aim at the head of one and the heart o(
another, he pulled both trigger^ at the same moment.
" Both shots were fatal. At the repo\ t of the guns
the others sprung to their feet and stared wildly
around them. McConnel, who had run instantly to
the spot where the other rifles were hid, hastily seized
■■»ne of them and fired at two of his enemies who hap-
11
162 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
pened to stand in a line with each other. The nearest
fell dead, being shot through the centre of the body ;
the second fell also, bellowing loudly, but quickly re-
covering, limped off into the woods as fast as possible
The fifth, and the only one who remained unhurt,
darted off like a deer, with a yell which announced
equal terror and astonishment. McConnel, not wish-
ing to fight any more such battles, selected his own rifle
from the stack, and made the best of his way to Lex-
ington, where he arrived safely within two days.
" Shortly afterward, Mrs. Dunlap, of Fayette, who
had been several months a prisoner amongst the In-
dians on Mad Kiver, made her escape, and returned to
Lexington. She reported that the survivor returned
to his tribe with a lamentable tale. He related that
they had taken a fine young hunter near Lexington,
and had brought him safely as far as the Ohio ; that
while encamped upon the bank of the river, a large
party of white men had fallen upon them in the night,
and killed all his companions, together with the poor
defenseless prisoner, who lay bound hand and foot,
unable either to escape or resist."
In October, 1780, Boone, who had brought hia
family back to Kentucky, went to the Blue Licks in
ORGANIZATION OF MILITIA. 163
company with his brother. They were attacked by a
party of Indians, and Daniel's brother was killed ; and
he himself pursued by them with the assistance of a
dog. Being hard pressed, he shot this animal to
prevent his barking from giving the alarm, and so
escaped.
Kentucky having been divided into three counties,
a more perfect organization of the militia was effected.
A Colonel and a Lieutenant-Colonel were appointed
for each county ; those who held the first rank were
Floyd, Logan, and Todd. Pope, Trigg, and Boone
held the second. Clark was Brigadier- General, and
commander-in-chief of all the Kentucky militia; besides
which he had a small number of regulars at Fort Jef-
ferson. Spies and scouting parties were continually
employed, and a galley was constructed by Clark's
order, which was furnished with light pieces of artil-
lery. This new species of defense did not however
take very well with the militia, who disliked serving
upon the water, probably because they found their
freedom of action too much circumscribed. The reg-
ulars were far too few to spare a force sufficient to
man it, and it soon fell into disuse, though it is said to
have been 01 considerable service while it was employed.
i 84 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
Had the Kentuckians possessed such an auxiliary at
the time of Byrd's invasion, it is probable that it
would have been repelled. But on account of the re-
luctance of the militia to serve in it, this useful vessel
was laid aside and left to rot.
The campaign, if we may so term it, of 1781, began
very early. In March, several parties of Indians en-
tered Jefferson County at different points, and am-
bushing the paths, killed four men, among whom was
Colonel William Linn. Captain Whitaker, with fif-
teen men, pursued one of the parties. He followed
their trail to the Ohio, when supposing they had cross-
ed over, he embarked his men in canoes to continue
the pursuit. But as they were in the act of pushing
off, the Indians, who were concealed in their rear, fired
upon them, killing or wounding nine of the party.
Notwithstanding this heavy loss, the survivors landed
and put the Indians to flight. Neither the number of
the savages engaged in this affair, or their loss, is men-
tioned in the narrative. In April, a station which had
been settled by Squire Boone, near Shelby ville, became
alarmed by the report of the appearance of Indians.
After some deliberation, it was determined to remove
to the settlement on Bear's Creek. While on their
AFFAIR OF THE m'AFEES. 165
way thither, they were attacked by a body of Indians,
and defeated with considerable loss. These are all the
details of this action we have been able to find.
Colonel Floyd collected twenty-five men to pursue the
Indians, but in spite of all his caution, fell into an am-
buscade, which was estimated to consist of two hundred
warriors. Half of Colonel Floyd's men were killed,
and the survivors supposed that they had slain nine or
ten of the Indians. This, however, is not probable ;
either the number of the Indians engaged, or their
loss, is much exaggerated. Colonel Floyd himself had
a narrow escape, being dismounted; he would have
been made prisoner, but for the gallant conduct of
Captain Wells, who gave him his horse, the colonel
being exhausted, and ran by his side, to support him
in the saddle. These officers had formerly been ene-
mies, but the magnanimous behavior of Wells on this
occasion, made them steadfast friends.
" As if every month," says Marshall, " was to fur-
nish its distinguishing ' incident — in May, Samuel
McAfee and another had set out from James McAfee's
Station for a plantation at a small distance, and when
advanced about one-fourth of a mile they were fired
on ; the man fell — McAfee wheeled and ran toward
166 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the fort ; in fifteen steps he met au Indian — they each
halt and present their guns, with muzzles almost touch-
ing— at the same instant' they each pull trigger,
McAfee's gun makes clear fire, the Indian's flashes in
the pan — and he falls : McAfee continues his retreat,
but the alarm being given, he meets his brothers,
Robert and James — the first, though cautioned, ran
along the path to see the dead Indian, by this time
several Indians had gained the path between him and
the fort. All his agility and dexterity was now put to
the test — he flies from tree to tree, still aiming to get
to the fort, but is pursued by an Indian ; he throws
himself over a fence, a hundred and fifty yards from
the fort, and the Indian takes a tree — Robert, sheltered
by the fence, was soon prepared for him, and while he
puts his face by the side of the tree to look for his ob-
ject, McAfee fires his rifle at it, and lodged the ball in
his mouth — in this he finds his death; and McAfee es-
capes to the fort."
In the mean time, James McAfee was in a situation
of equal hazard and perplexity. Five Indians, lying
in ambush, fired at, but missed him ; he flies to a tree
for safety, and instantly received a fire from three or
four Indians on the other side — the bullets knock the
• MAJOR MAGARY'S PURSUIT. 167
dust about his feet, but do him no injury ; he aban-
dons the tree and makes good his retreat to the fort.
One white man and two Indians were killed. Such
were the incidents of Indian warfare — and such the
fortunate escape of the brothers.
Other events occurred in rapid succession — the In-
dians appear in all directions, and with horrid yells
and menacing gestures commence a fire on the fort.
It was returned with spirit ; the women cast the bul-
lets— the men discharged them at the enemy. This
action lasted about two hours ; the Indians then with-
drew. The firing had been heard, and the neighbor-
hood roused for the fight. Major Magary, with some
of his men, and others from other stations, to the
number of forty, appeared on the ground soon after
the Indians had retreated, and determined on pursuing
them. This was accordingly done with promptitude
and celerity. At the distance of a mile the enemy were
overtaken, attacked, and defeated. They fled — were
pursued for several miles — and completely routed.
Six or seven Indians were seen dead, and others
wounded. One Kentuckian was killed in the action ;
another mortally wounded, who died after a few days.
Before the Indians entirely withdrew from the fort,
168 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
they killed all the cattle they saw, without making
any use of them.
From this time McAfee's Station was never more
attacked, although it remained for several years an
exposed frontier. Nor should the remark be omitted,
that for the residue of the year, there were fewer in-
cidents of a hostile nature than usual.
Fort Jefferson, which had been established on the
Mississippi, about five miles below the mouth of the
Ohio, had excited the jealousy of the Choctaws and
Chickasaws, who claimed the territory in which it
was budt. In order to appease them, it was deemed
advisable to evacuate the post.
The hostile tribes north of the Ohio had by this
time found the strength of the settlers, and saw that
unless they made a powerful effort, and that speedily,
they must forever relinquish all hope of reconquering
Kentucky. Such an effort was determined upon for
the next year ; and in order to weaken the whites as
much as possible, till they were prepared for it, they
continued to send out small parties, to infest the
settlements.
At a distance of about twelve miles from Logan's
Fort, was a settlement called the Montgomery Station.
ATTACK ON MONTGOMERY'S STATION. 169
Most of the people were connected with Logan's
family. This Station was surrounded in the night.
In the morning an attack was made. Several persons
were killed and others captured, A girl who escaped
spread the alarm; a messenger reached Logan's Fort,
and General Logan with a strong party pursued the
Indians, defeated them and recovered the prisoners
CHAPTER XV.
News of Cornwallis's surrender — Its effects — Captain Estill's de-
feat— Grand army of Indians raised for the conquest of Ken-
tucky— Simon Girty's speech — Attack on Hoy's Station — In-
vestment of Bryant's Station — Expedient of the besieged to
obtain water— Grand attack on the fort — Repulse — Regular
siege commenced — Messengers sent to Lexington — Reinforce-
ments obtained — Arrival near the fort — Ambushed and at-
tacked— They enter the fort — Narrow escape of Girty — He
proposes a capitulation — Parley — Reynolds's answer to Girty
— The siege raised — Retreat of the Indians.
In October, 1781, Cornwallis surrendered at York-
town. This event was received in Kentucky, as in
other parts of the country, with great joy; The
power of Britain was supposed to be broken, or at
least so much crippled, that they would not be in a
condition to assist their Indian allies, as they had pre-
viously done. The winter passed away quietly enough,
and the people were once more lulled into security,
from which, they were again to be rudely awakened.
Early in the spring the parties of the enemy recom-
(170)
estill's defeat. 171
menced their forays. Yet there was nothing in these
to excite unusual apprehensions. At first they were
scarcely equal in magnitude to those of the previous
year. Cattle were killed, and horses stolen, and in-
dividuals or small parties were attacked. But in May
an affair occurred possessing more interest, in a mili-
tary point of view, than any other in the history of
Indian wars.
" In the month of May, a party of about twenty-
five Wyandots invested Estill's Station, on the south
of the Kentucky Eiver, killed one white man, took a
negro prisoner, and after destroying the cattle, re-
treated. Soon after the Indians disappeared, Captain
Estill raised a company of twenty-five men; with
these he pursued the Indians, and on Hinkston's Fork
of Licking, two miles below the Little Mountain, came
within gunshot of them. They had just crossed the
creek, which in that part is small, and were ascending
one side as Estill's party descended the other, of two
approaching hills of moderate elevation. The water-
course which lay between, had produced an opening
in the timber and brush, conducing to mutual dis-
covery , while both hills were well set with trees, in-
terspersed with saplings and bushes. Instantly after
172 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
discovering the Indians, some of Captain Estill's men
fired at them ; at first they seemed alarmed, and made
a movement like flight; but their chief, although
wounded, gave them orders to stand and fight — on
which they promptly prepared for battle by each man
taking a tree and facing his enemy, as nearly in a line
as practicable. In this position they returned the fire
and entered into the battle, which they considered as
inevitable, with all the fortitude and animation of in-
dividual and concerted bravery, so remarkable in this
particular tribe.
In the mean time, Captain Estill, with due attention
to what was passing on the opposite side, checked the
progress of his men at about sixty yards distance from
the foe, and gave orders to extend their lines in front
of the Indians, to cover themselves by means of the
trees, and to fire as the object should be seen — with a
sure aim. This order, perfectly adapted to the occa-
sion, was executed with alacrity, as far as circum-
stances would admit, and the desultory mode of In-
dian fighting was thought to require. So that both
sides were preparing and ready at the same time for
the bloody conflict which ensued, and which proved
to be singularly obstinate.
estill's defeat. 173
The numbers were equal ; some have said, exactly
twenty -five on each side. Others have mentioned
that Captain Estill, upon seeing the Indians form for
battle, dispatched one or two of his men upon the back
trail to hasten forward a small reinforcement, which
he supposed was following him ; and if so, it gave the
Indians the superiority of numbers without producing
the desired assistance, for the reinforcement never
arrived.
Now were the hostile lines within rifle-shot, and the
action became warm and general to their extent.
Never was battle more like single combat since the
use of fire-arms; each man sought his man, and fired
only when he saw his mark ; wounds and death were
inflicted on either side — neither advancing nor re-
treating. The firing was deliberate ; with caution
they looked, but look they would, for the foe, although
life itself was often the forfeit. And thus both sides
firmly stood, or bravely fell, for more than an hour;
upward of one-fourth of the combatants had fallen,
never more to rise, on either side, and several others
were wounded. Never, probably, was the native
bravery or collected fortitude of men put to a test
more severe. In the clangor of an ardent battle, when
174 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
death is forgotten, it is nothing for the brave to die — ■
when even cowards die like brave men — but in the
cool and lingering expectation of death, none but the
man of the true courage can stand. Such were those
engaged in this conflict. Never was maneuvering
more necessary or lees practicable. Captain Estill
had not a man to spare from his line, and deemed un-
safe any movement in front with a view to force the
enemy from their ground, because in such a movement
he must expose his men, and some of them would
inevitably fall before they could reach the adversary.
This would increase the relative superiority of the
enemy, while they would receive the survivors with
tomahawk in hand, in the use of which they were
practiced and expert. He clearly perceived that no
advantage was to be gained over the Indians while
the action was continued in their own mode of war
fare. For although his men were probably the best
shooters, the Indians were undoubtedly the most expert
hiderrs ; that victory itself, could it have been purchased
with the loss of his last man, would afford but a mel-
ancholy consolation for the loss of friends and com-
rades ; but even of victory, without some maneuvre,
he could not assure himself. His situation was criti'
DEATH OF CAPTAIN ESTILL. 175
cal ; his fate seemed suspended upon the events of the
minute ; the most prompt expedient was demanded.
He cast his eyes over the scene ; the creek was before
him, and seemed to oppose a charge on the enemy —
retreat he could not. On the one hand he observed a
valley running from the creek toward the rear of thy
enemy's line, and immediately combining this circum-
stance with the urgency of his situation, rendered the
more apparently hazardous by an attempt of the In-
dians to extend their line and take his in flank, he
determined to detach six of his men by this valley to
gain the flank or rear of the enemy ; while himself,
with the residue, maintained his position in front.
The detachment was accordingly made under the
command of Lieutenant Miller, to whom the route was
shown and the order given, conformably to the above-
mentioned determination; unfortunately, however, it
was not executed. The lieutenant, either mistaking
his way or intentionally betraying his duty, his honor,
and his captain, did not proceed with the requisite
dispatch ; and. the Indians, attentive to occurrences,
finding out the weakened condition of their adversa-
ries, rushed upon them and compelled a retreat, after
Captain Estill and eight of his men were killed. Four
176 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
others were badly wounded, who, notwithstanding,
made their escape ; so that only nine fell into the
hands of the savages, who scalped and stripped them,
of course.
It was believed by the survivors of this action that
me half of the Indians were killed; and this idea was
jorroborated by reports from their towns.
There is also a tradition that Miller, with his de-
tachment, crossed the creek, fell in with the enemy,
lost one or two of his men, and had a third or fourth
wounded before he retreated.
The battle lasted two hours, and the Indian chief
was himself killed immediately after he had slain
Captain Estill ; at least it is so stated in one account
we have seen. This action had a very depressing effect
upon the spirits of the Kentuckians. Yet its results
to the victors were enough to make them say, with
Pyrrhus, " A few more such victories, and we shall
be undone." It is very certain that the Indians would
not have been willing to gain many such victories,
even to accomplish their darling object — the expul-
sion of the whites from Kentucky.
The grand army, destined to accomplish the con-
quest of Kentucky, assembled at Chill icothe. A de-
ATTEMPTED CONQUEST OF KENTUCKY. 177
tachmcnt from Detroit reinforced them, and, before
setting out, Simon Girty made a speech to them, en-
larging on the ingratitude of the Long-knives in rebel-
ling against their Great Father across the water. He
described in glowing terms the fertility of Kentucky,
exhorting them to recover it from the grasp of the
Long-knife before he should be too strong for them.
This speech met with the cordial approbation of the
company ; the army soon after took up its march for
the settlements. Six hundred warriors, the flower of
all the Northwestern tribes, were on their way to make
what they knew must be their last effort to drive the
intruders from their favorite hunting-ground.
Various parties preceded the main body, and these
appearing in different places created much confusion
in the minds of the inhabitants in regard to the place
where the blow was to fall. An attack was made
upon the garrison at Hoy's Station, and two boys were
taken prisoners. The Indians, twenty in number,
were pursued by Captain Holden, with seventeen men.
He overtook them near the Blue Licks, (that fatal spot
for 'the settlers,) and after a sharp conflict was obliged
to retreat with the loss of four men.
News of this disaster arrived at Bryant's Station,
la
178 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
fa post on the Elkhorn, near the road from Lexington
to Maysville,) on the fourteenth of August, and the
garrison prepared to march to the assistance of Hoy's
Station. But in the night the main body of the enemy
arrived before the fort, it having been selected as the
point for the first blow.
The water for the use of the garrison was drawn
from a spring at a considerable distance from the fort,
on the northwestern side. Near this spring the greater
part of the enemy stationed themselves in ambush.
On the other side of the fort a body was posted with
orders to make a feint of attacking, in order to draw
the attention of the garrison to that point, and give
an opportunity for the main attack. At daylight the
garrison, consisting of forty or fifty men, were pre-
paring to march out, when they were startled by a
heavy discharge of rifles, with an accompaniment of
such yells as come only from an Indian's throat.
" All ran hastily to the picketing," says McClung,
"and beheld a small party of Indians exposed to
open view, firing, yelling, and making the most furious
gestures. The appearance was so singular, and so dif-
ferent from their usual manner of fighting, that some
of the more wary and experienced of the garrison in-
ATTACK UPON BRYANT'S STATION. 179
stantly pronounced it a decoy party, and restrained
the young men from sallying out and attacking them,
as some of them were strongly disposed to do The
opposite side of the fort was instantly manned, and
several breaches in the picketing rapidly repaired.
Their greatest distress arose from the prospect of suf-
fering for water. The more experienced of the garri-
son felt satisfied that a powerful party was in ambus-
cade near the spring ; but at the same time they sup-
posed that the Indians would not unmask themselves
until the firing upon the opposite side of the fort was
returned with such warmth as to induce the belief that
the feint had succeeded.
Acting upon this impression, and yielding to the
urgent necessity of the case, they summoned all the
women, without exception, and explaining to them
the circumstances in which they were placed, and the
improbability that any injury would be offered them,
until the firing had been returned from the opposite
side of the fort, they urged them to go in a body to
the spring", and each to bring up a bucketfull of
water. Some of the ladies, as was natural, had no
relish for the undertaking, and asked why the men
could not bring water as well as themselves ? Ob-
180 LTFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
serving that they were not bullet-proof, and that the
Indians made no distinction between male and female
scalps.
To this it was answered, that women were in the
nabit of bringing water every morning to the fort,
and that if the Indians saw them engaged as usual, it
would induce them to believe that their ambuscade
was undiscovered, and that they would not unmask
themselves for the sake of firing at a few women,
when they hoped, by remaining concealed a few
moments longer, to obtain complete possession of the
fort. That if men should go down to the spring, the
Indians would immediately suspect that something
was wrong, would despair of succeeding by ambus-
cade, and would instantly rush upon them, follow
them into the fort, or shoot them down at the spring.
The decision was soon over.
A few of the boldest declared their readiness to
brave the danger; and the younger and more timid
rallying in the rear of these veterans, they all marched
down in a body to the spring, within point-blank shot
of more than five hundred Indian warriors. Son e of
the girls could not help betraying symptoms of terror,
but the married women, in general, moved with a
FIRST ATTACK REPULSED. 181
steadiness and composure which completely deceived
the Indians. Not a shot was fired. The party were
permitted to fill their buckets, one after another, with-
out interruption ; and although their steps became
quicker and quicker, on their -return, and when near
the gate of the fort, degenerated into a rather unmill-
tary celerity, attended with some little crowding in
passing the gate, yet not more than one-fifth of the
water was spilled, and the eyes of the youngest had
not dilated to more than double their ordinary size.
Being now amply supplied with water, they sent
out thirteen young men to attack the decoy party,
with orders to fire with great rapidity, and make as
much noise as possible, but not to pursue the enemy
too far, while the rest of the garrison took post on the
opposite side of the fort, cocked their guns, and stood
in readiness to receive the ambuscade as soon as it
was unmasked. The firing of the light parties on the
Lexington road was soon heard, and quickly became
sharp and serious, gradually becoming more distant
from the fort. Instantly, Girty sprung up at the
head of his five hundred warriors, and rushed rapidly
upon the western gate, ready to force his way over
the undefended palisades. Into this immense mass of
182 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
dusky bodies, the garrison poured several rapid vol-
leys of rifle balls with destructive effect. Their con-
sternation may be imagined. With wild cries they
dispersed on the right and left, and in two minutes
not an Indian was to be seen. At the same time, the
party who had sallied out on the Lexington road,
came running into the fort at the opposite gate, in
high spirits, and laughing heartily at the success of
their maneuvre."
After this repulse, the Indians commenced the at-
tack in regular form, that is regular Indian form, for
they had no cannon, which was a great oversight,
and one which we would not have expected them to
make, after witnessing the terror with which they
had inspired the Kentuckians in Byrd's invasion.
Two men had left the garrison immediately upon
discovering the Indians, to carry the news to Lexing-
ton and demand succor. On arriving at that place
they found the men had mostly gone to Hoy's Station.
The couriers pursued, and overtaking them, quickly
brought them back. Sixteen horsemen, and forty or
fifty on foot, started to the relief of Bryant's Station,
and arrived before that place at two o'clock in the
afternoon.
ARRIVAL OF REINFORCEMENTS. 183
To the left of the long and narrow lane, where
the Maysville and Lexington road now runs, there
were more than one hundred acres of green standing
corn. The usual road from Lexington to Bryant's,
ran parallel to the fence of this field, and only a few
feet distant from it. On the opposite side of the road
was a thick wood. Here, more than three hundred
Indians lay in ambush, within pistol-shot of the road,
awaiting the approach of the party. The horsemen
came in view at a time when the firing had ceased,
and every thing was quiet. Seeing no enemy, and
hearing no noise, they entered the lane at a gallop,
and were instantly saluted with a shower of rifle balls,
from each side, at the distance of ten paces.
At the first shot, the whole party set spurs to their
horses, and rode at full speed through a rolling fire
from either side, which continued for several hundred
yards, but owing partly to the furious rate at which
they rode, partly to the clouds of dust raised by the
horses' feet, they all entered the fort unhurt. The
men on foot were less fortunate. They were advan-
cing through the corn-field, and might have reached
the fort in safety, but for their eagerness to succor
their friends. Without reflecting, that from the
184 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
weight and extent of the fire, the enemy must have
been ten times their number, they ran up with incon-
siderate courage, to the spot where the firing was
heard, and there found themselves cut off from the
fort, and within pistol-shot of more than three hun-
dred savages.
Fortunately the Indians' guns had just* been dis-
charged, and they had not yet had leisure to reload.
At the sight of this brave body of footmen, however,
they raised a hideous yell, and rushed upon them,
tomahawk in hand. Nothing but the high corn and
their loaded rifles, could have saved them from de-
struction. The Indians were cautious in rushing upon
a loaded rifle with only a tomahawk, and when they
halted to load their pieces, the Kentuckians ran with
great rapidity, turning and dodging through the corn
in every direction. Some entered the wood and
escaped through the thickets of cane, some were shot
down in the corn-field, others maintained a running
fight, halting occasionally behind trees and keeping the
enemy at bay with their rifles ; for, of all men, the In-
dians are generally the most cautious in exposing them-
selves to danger. A stout, active, young fellow, was
so hard pressed by Girty and several savages, that be
EXCITING SCENE. 185"
was compelled to discharge his rifle, (however un-
willing, having no time to reload it,) and Girty fell.
It happened, however, that a piece of thick sole-
leather was in his shot-pouch at the time, which received
the ball, and preserved his life, although the force of
the blow felled him to the ground. The savages halted
upon his fall, and the young man escaped. Although the
skirmish and the race lasted more than an hour, during
which the corn-field presented a scene of turmoil and
bustle which can scarcely be conceived, yet very few
lives were lost. Only six of the white men were killed
and wounded, and probably still fewer of the enemy,
as the whites never fired until absolutely necessary,
but reserved their loads as a check upon the enemy.
Had the Indians pursued them to Lexington, they
might have possessed themselves of it without resist-
ance, as there was no force there to oppose them ; but
after following the fugitives for a few hundred yards,
they returned to the hopeless siege of the fort."*
The day was nearly over, and the Indians were dis-
couraged. They had made no perceptible impression
upon the fort, but had sustained a severe loss; the
country was aroused, and they feared to find them-
* McCl ting.
186 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
selves outnumbered in their turn. Girty determined to
attempt to frighten them into a capitulation. For this
purpose he cautiously approached the works, and sud-
denly showed himself on a large stump, from which he
addressed the garrison. After extolling their valor, he
assured them that their resistance was useless, as he ex-
pected his artillery shortly, when their fort would be
Grushed without difficulty. He promised them perfect
security for their lives if they surrendered, and menaced
them with the usual inflictions of Indian rage if they
refused. He concluded by asking if they knew him.
The garrison of course gave no credit to the promises of
good treatment contained in this speech. They were
too well acquainted with the facility with which such
pledges were given and violated ; but the mention of
cannon was rather alarming, as the expedition of Colo-
nel Byrd was fresh in the minds of all. None of the
leaders made any answer to Girty, but a young man by
the name of Eeynolds, took upon himself to reply to
it. In regard to the question of Girty, "Whether the
garrison knew him?" he said:
" 'That he was very well known; that he himself
had a worthless dog, to which he had given the name
of ' Simon Girty,' in consequence of his striking re-
RETREAT OF GIRTY. 187
semblance to the man of that name ; that if he had
either artillery or reinforcements, he might bring them
up and be d d ; that if either himself, or any of the
naked rascals with him, found their way into the fort,
rney would disdain to use their guns against them, but
would drive them out again with switches, of which
they had collected a great number for that purpose
alone ; and finally he declared, that they also expected
reinforcements ; that the whole country was marching
to their assistance; that if Girty and his gang of mur-
derers remained twenty-four hours longer before the
fort, their scalps would be found drying in the sun
upon the roofs of their cabins. ' "*
Girty affected much sorrow for the inevitable destruc-
tion which he assured the garrison awaited them, in
consequence of their obstinacy. All idea of continu-
ing the siege was now abandoned. The besiegers evac-
uated their camp that very night ; and with so much
precipitation, that meat was left roasting before the
fires. Though we cannot wonder at this relinquishing
of a long-cherished scheme when we consider the char-
acter of the Indians, yet it would be impossible to ac
count for the appearance of precipitancy, and even ter
* McClung.
188 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
ror, with which their retreat was accompanied, did we
not perceive it to be the first of a series of similar ar-
tifices, designed to draw on their enemies to their own
destruction. There was nothing in the circumstances to
excite great apprehensions. To be sure, they had been
repulsed in their attempt on the fort with some loss,
yet this loss (thirty men) would by no means have de-
terred a European force of similar numbers from pros-
ecuting the enterprise,
Girty and his great Indian army retired toward
Huddle's and Martin's Stations, on a circuitous route,
toward Lower Blue Licks. They expected, however,
to be pursued, and evidently desired it, as they left a
broad trail behind them, and marked the trees which
stood on their route with their tomahawks*
* Frost: "Border Wars of the West." Peck: " Lif° of
Boone." McClung : "Western Adventure."
CHAPTER XVI.
Arrival of reinforcements at Bryant's Station — Colonel Dame.
Boone, his son and brother among them — Colonels Trigg,
Todd, and others — Great number of commissioned officers —
Consultation — Pursuit commenced without waiting for Colonel
Logan's reinforcement — Indian trail — Apprehensions of Boone
and others — Arrival at the Blue Licks — Indians seen — Con-
sultation— Colonel Boone's opinion — Rash conduct of Major
McGarey — Battle of Blue Licks commenced — Fierce encounter
with the Indians — Israel Boone, Colonels Todd and Trigg, and
Majors Harland and McBride killed — Attempt of the Indians
to outflank the whites — Retreat of the whites — Colonel Boone
nearly surrounded by Indians — Cuts his way through them,
and returns to Bryant's Station — Great slaughter — Bravery
of Netherland — Noble conduct of Reynolds in saving Captain
Patterson — Loss of the whites — Colonel Boone's statement —
Remarks on McGary's conduct — The fugitives meet Colonel
Logan with his party — Return to the field of battle— Logan
returns to Bryant's Station.
The intelligence of the siege of Bryant's Station
had spread far and wide, and the whole region round
was in a state of intense excitement. The next morn-
(189)
190 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
ing after the enemy's retreat, reinforcements began to
arrive, and in the course of the day successive bodies
of militia presented themselves, to the number of one
hundred and eighty men.
Among this number was Colonel Daniel Boone, his
son Israel, and his brother Samuel, with a strong
party of men from Boonesborough. Colonel Stephen
Trigg led a similar corps from Harrodsburg; and
Colonel John Todd headed the militia from Lexington.
Majors Harland, McGary, McBride, and Levi Todd
were also among the arrivals*
It is said that nearly one-third of the whole force
assembled at Bryant's Station were commissioned offi-
cers, many of whom had hurried to the relief of their
countrymen. This superior activity is to be accounted
for by the fact that the officers were generally selected
from the most active and skillful of the pioneers.
A consultation was held in a tumultuous manner,
and it was determined to pursue the enemy at once.
The Indians had retreated by way of the Lower Blue
Licks. The pursuit was commenced without waiting
for the junction of Colonel Logan, who was known to
be coming up with a strong reinforcement. The
* Peck.
ARRIVAL AT THE BLUE LTCKS.^ 191
trail of the enemy exhibited a degree of careless-
ness very unusual in an Indian retreat. Various arti-
cles were strewn along the path, as if in terror they
had been abandoned. These symptoms, while they
increased the ardor of the young men, excited the
apprehensions of the more experienced borderers, and
Boone in particular. He noticed that, amid all the
signs of disorder so lavishly displayed, the Indians
seemed to take even unusual care to conceal their
numbers by contracting their camp. It would seem
that the Indians had rather overdone their stratagem.
It was very natural to those not much experienced in
Indian warfare to suppose that the articles found
strewn along the road had been abandoned in the
hurry of flight ; but when they found that the utmost
pains had been taken to point out the way to them by
chopping the trees, one would have thought that the
rawest among them, who had only spent a few months
on the border, could have seen through so transparent
an artifice. But these indications were disregarded in
the desire felt to punish the Indians for their invasion.
Nothing was seen of the enemy till the Kentuckian3
reached the Blue Licks. Here, just as they arrived at
Licking Eiver, a few Indians were seen on the other
192 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
side, retreating without any appearance of alarm.
The troops now made a halt, and the officers held a
consultation to determine on the course to be pursued.
Colonel Daniel Boone, on being appealed to as the
most experienced person present, gave his opinion as
follows :
" That their situation was critical and delicate ; that
the force opposed to them was undoubtedly numerous
and ready for battle, as might readily be seen from the
leisurely retreat of the few Indians who had appeared
upon the crest of the hill ; that he was well acquainted
with the ground in the neighborhood of the Licks, and
was apprehensive that an ambuscade was formed at
the distance of a mile in advance, where two ravines,
one upon each side of the ridge, ran in such a manner
that a concealed enemy might assail them at once both
in front and flank before they were apprized of the
danger.
" It would be proper, therefore, to do one of two
things. Either to await the arrival of Logan, who
was now undoubtedly on his march to join them ; or.
if it was determined to attack without delay, that one-
half of their number should march up, the river,
which there bends in an elliptical form, cross at the
RASH CONDUCT OF SUGARY. 193
rapids, and fall upon the rear of the enemy, while the
other division attacked them in front. At any rate,
he strongly urged the necessity of reconnoitering the
ground carefully before the main body crossed the
river."*
McClung, in his " Western Adventures," doubts
whether the plan of operation proposed by Colonel
Boone would have been more successful than that
actually adopted ; suggesting that the enemy would
have cut them off in detail, as at Estill's defeat.
But before the officers could come to any conclusion,
Major McGary dashed into the river on horseback,
calling on all who were not cowards to follow. The
next moment the whole of the party were advancing
to the attack with the greatest ardor, but Avithout any
order whatever. Horse and foot struggled through
the river together, and, without waiting to form,
rushed up the ascent from the shore.
" Suddenly," says McClung, " the van halted. They
had reached the spot mentioned by Boone, where the
two ravines head, on each side of the ridge. Here a
body of Indians presented themselves, and attacked
the van. McGary's party instantly returned the fire,
IS * McClung.
194 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
but under great disadvantage. They -were upon a
"bare and open ridge ; the Indians in a bushy ravine.
The centre and rear, ignorant of the ground, hurried
up to the assistance of the van, but were soon stopped
by a terrible fire from the ravine which flanked them.
They found themselves enclosed as if in the wings of
a net, destitute of proper shelter, while the enemy
were in a great measure covered from their fire. Still,
however, they maintained their ground. The action
became warm and bloody. The parties gradually
closed, the Indians emerged from the ravine, and the
tire became mutually destructive. The officers suf-
fered dreadfully. Todd and Trigg in the rear, II a in-
land, McBride, and young Israel Boone in front, were
already killed.
The Indians gradually extended their line to turn
the right of the Kentuckians, and cut off their retreat.
This was quickly perceived by the weight of the fire
from that quarter, and the rear instantly fell back in
disorder, and attempted to rush through their only
opening to the river. The motion quickly communi-
cated itself to the van, and a hurried retreat became
general. The Indians instantly sprung forward in
pursuit, and, falling upon them with their tomahawks,
BATTLE OF BLUE LICKS. 195
made a cruel slaughter. From the battle-ground to
trie river the spectacle was terrible. The horsemen,
generally, escaped ; but the foot, particularly the van,
which had advanced furthest within the wings of the
net, were almost totally destroyed. Colonel Boone,
after witnessing the death of his son and many of his
dearest friends, found himself almost entirely sur-
rounded at the very commencement of the retreat.
Several hundred Indians were between him and the
ford, to which, the great mass of the fugitives were
bending their flight, and to which the attention of the
savages was principally directed. Being intimately
acquainted with the ground, he, together with a few
friends, dashed into the ravine which the Indians had
occupied, but which most of them had now left to join
in the pursuit. After sustaining one or two heavy
fires, and baffling one or two small parties who pur-
sued him for a short distance, he crossed the river
below the ford by swimming, and, entering the wood
at a point where there was no pursuit, returned by a
circuitous route to Bryant's Station. In the mean
time, the great mass of the victors and vanquished
crowded the bank of the ford.
The slaughter was great in the river. The ford
196 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
was crowded with horsemen and foot and Indians, all
mingled together. Some were compelled to seek a
passage above by swimming ; some who could not
swim were overtaken and killed at the edge of the
water. A man by the name of Netherlancl, who had
formerly been strongly suspected of cowardice, here
displayed a coolness and presence of mind equally
noble and unexpected. Being finely mounted, he had
outstripped the great mass of fugitives, and crossed
the river in safety. A dozen or twenty horsemen
accompanied him, and, having placed the river between
them and the enemy, showed a disposition to continue
their flight, without regard to the safety of their
friends who were on foot, and still struggling with the
current.
Netherland instantly checked his horse, and in a
loud voice, called upon his companions to halt, fire
upon the Indians, and save those who were still in
the stream. The party instantly obeyed ; and facing
about, poured a close and fatal discharge of rifles upon
the foremost of the pursuers. The enemy instantly
^ell back from the opposite bank, and gave time for
the harassed and miserable footmen to cross in safety.
The check, however, was but momentary. Indians
DEFEAT and loss of the whites. 197
were seen crossing in great numbers above and below,
and the flight again became general. Most of the foot
left the great buffalo track, and plunging into the
thickets, escaped by a circuitous route to Bryants
Station."
The pursuit was kept up for twenty miles, though
with but little success. In the flight from the scene
of action to the river, young Eeynolds, (the same who
replied to Girty's summons at Bryant's Station,) on
horseback, overtook Captain Patterson on foot. This
officer had not recovered from the effects of wounds
received on a former occasion, and was altogether un-
able to keep up with the rest of the fugitives.
Reynolds immediately dismounted, and gave the
captain his horse. Continuing his flight on foot, he
swam the river, but was made prisoner by a party of
Indians. Lie was left in charge of a single Indian,
whom he soon knocked down, and so escaped. For
the assistance he so gallantly rendered him, Captain
Patterson rewarded Reynolds with a present of two
hundred acres of land.
Sixty whites were killed in this battle of the Blue
Licks, and seven made prisoners. Colonel Boone, in
his Autobiography, says that he was informed that
198 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the Indian loss in killed, was four more than that of
the Kentuckians, and that the former put four of the
prisoners to death, to make the numbers equal. But
this account does not seem worthy of credit, when we
consider the vastly superior numbers of the Indians,
their advantage of position, and the disorderly manner
in which the Kentuckians advanced. If this account
is true, the loss of the Indians in the actual battle
must have been much greater than that of their oppo-
nents, many of the latter having been killed in the
pursuit.
As the loss of the Kentuckians on this occasion,
die heaviest they had ever sustained, was undoubtedly
caused by rashness, it becomes our duty, according to
the established usage of historians, to attempt to show
where the fault lies. The conduct of McGary, which
brought on the action, appears to be the most cul-
pable. He never denied the part which is generally
attributed to him, but justified himself by saying that
while at Bryant's Station, he had advised waiting for
Logan, but was met with the charge of cowardice.
He believed that Todd and Trigg were jealous of
Logan, who was the senior Colonel, and would have
taken the command had he come up. This statement
THE TROOPS DISBANDED. 199
he made to a gentleman several years after the battle
took place. He said also to the same person, that
when he found them hesitating in the presence of the
enemy, he "burst into a passion," called them cow-
ards, and dashed into the river as before narrated.
If this account be true, it may somewhat palliate, but
certainly not justify the action.
Before the fugitives reached Bryant's Station, they
met Logan advancing with his detachment. The ex-
aggerated accounts he received of the slaughter, in-
duced him to return to the above-mentioned place.
On the next morning all who had escaped from the
battle were assembled, when Logan found himself at
the head of four hundred and fifty men. With this
force, accompanied by Colonel Boone, he set out for
the scene of action, hoping that the enemy, encouraged
by their success, would await his arrival. But when
ne reached the field, he found it deserted. The bodies
of the slain Kentuckians, frightfully mangled, were
strewed over the ground. After collecting and in-
terring these, Logan and Boone, finding they could
do nothing more, returned to Bryant's Station, where
they disbanded the troops.
200 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
"By such rash men as McGary," says Mr. Peck,*
" Colonel Boone was charged with want of courage,
when the result proved his superior wisdom and fore-
sight. All the testimony gives Boone credit for hig
sagacity and correctness in judgment before the action,
and his coolness and self-possession in covering the
retreat. His report of this battle to Benjamin Har-
rison, Governor of Virginia, is one of the few docu-
ments that remain from his pen."
" Boone's Station, Fayette County, August SOth, 1782.
" Sir : Present circumstances of affairs cause me to
write to your Excellency as follows. On the 16th in-
stant, a large number of Indians, with some white
men, attacked one of our frontier Stations, known by
the name of Bryant's Station. The siege continued
from about sunrise till about ten o'clock the next
day, when they marched off. Notice being given to
the neighboring Stations, we immediately raised one
hundred and eighty-one horse, commanded by Colonel
John Todd, including some of the Lincoln County
militia, commanded by Colonel Trigg, and pursued
about forty miles.
* "Life of Boone," p. 130.
LETTER TO GOVERNOR HARRISON. 201
"On the 19th instant, we discovered the enemy
lying in wait for ns. On this discovery, Ave formed
our columns into one single line, and marched up in
their front within about forty yards, before there was
a gun fired. Colonel Trigg commanded on the right,
myself on the left, Major McGary in the centre, and
Major Harlan the advanced party in front. From the
manner in which we had formed, it fell to my lot to
bring on the attack. This was done with a very
heavy fire on both sides, and extended back of the
line to Colonel Trigg, where the enemy were so strong
they rushed up and broke the right wing at the first
fire. Thus the enemy got in our rear, with the loss
of seventy-seven of our men, and twelve wounded.
Afterward we were reinforced by Colonel Logan,
which made our force four hundred and sixty men.
"We marched again to the battle-ground ; but finding
the enemy had gone, we proceeded to bury the dead.
" We found forty-three on the ground, and many
lay about, which we could not stay to find, hungry
and weary as we were, and somewhat dubious that
the enemy might not have gone off quite. By the
signs, we thought that the Indians had exceeded foui
hundred ; while the whole of this militia of the
202 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
county does not amount to more than one hundred
and thirty. From these facts your Excellency may
form an idea of our situation.
" I .know that your own circumstances are critical ;
hut are we to be wholly forgotten ? I hope not. I
trust about five hundred men may be sent to oui as-
sistance immediately. If these shall be stationed as
our county lieutenants shall deem necessary, it may
be the means of saving our part of the country ; but
if they are placed under the direction of General
Clark, they will be of little or no service to our settle-
ment. The Falls lie one hundred miles west of us,
and the Indians northeast; while our men are fre-
quently called to protect them. I have encouraged
the people in this county all that I could ; but I can
no longer justify them or myself to risk our lives
here under such extraordinary hazards. The in-
habitants of this county are very much alarmed at the
thoughts of the Indians bringing another campaign
into our country this fall. If this should be the case,
it will break up these settlements. I hope, there-
fore, your Excellency will take the matter into
consideration, and send us some relief as quick as
possible.
LETTER TO GOVERNOR HARRISON. 203
* These are my sentiments, without consulting any
person. Colonel Logan will, I expect, immediately
send you an express, by whom I humbly request
your Excellency's answer. In the meanwhile, I
romain, Daniel Boone."
CHAPTER XVII.
The Indians return home from the Blue Licks — They attack tha
settlements in Jefferson County — Affair at Simpson's Creek —
General Clark's expedition to the Indian country— Colonel
Boone joins it — Its effect — Attack of the Indians on the Crab
Orchard settlement — Rumor of intended invasion by the
Cherokees — Difficulties about the treaty with Great Britain —
Hostilities of the Indians generally stimulated by renegade
whites — Simon Girty — Causes of his hatred of the whites —
Girty insulted by General Lewis — Joins the Indians at the
battle of Point Pleasant — Story of his rescuing Simon Kenton
— Crawford's expedition, and the burning of Crawford — Close
of Girty's career.
Most of the Indians who had taken part in the battle
of the Blue Licks, according to their custom, returned
home to boast of their victory, thus abandoning all
the advantages which might have resulted to them
from following up their success. Some of them, how-
ever, attacked the settlements in Jefferson County,
but they were prevented from doing much mischief
by the vigilance of the inhabitants. They succeeded,
(204)
clark's expedition. 205
however, in breaking up a small settlement on Simp-
son's Creek. This they attacked in the night, while
the men, wearied by a scout of several days, were
asleep. The enemy entered the houses before their
occupants were fully aroused. Notwithstanding this,
several of the men defended themselves with great
courage. Thomas Kandolph killed several Indians
before his wife and infant were struck down at his
side, when he escaped with his remaining child through
the roof. On reaching the ground he was assailed by
two of the savages, but he beat them off, and escaped.
Several women escaped to the woods, and two were
secreted under the floor of a cabin, where they re-
mained undiscovered. Still the Indians captured
quite a number of women and children, some of whom
they put to death on the road home. The rest were
liberated the next year upon the conclusion of peace
with the English.
General George Rogers Clark proposed a retaliatory
expedition into the Indian country, and to carry out
the plan, called a council of the superior officers. The
council agreed to his plan, and preparations were made
to raise the requisite number of troops by drafting, if
there should be any deficiency of volunteers. But it
206 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
was not found necessary to resort to compulsory mea-
sures, both men and supplies for the expedition -vere
raised without difficulty. The troops to the number
of one thousand, all mounted, assembled at Bryant's
Station, and the Falls of the Ohio, from whence the
two detachments marched under Logan and Floyd to
the mouth of the Licking, where general Clark as-
sumed the command. Colonel Boone took part in this
expedition ; but probably as a volunteer. He is not
mentioned as having a separate command.
The history of this expedition, like most others of
the same nature, possesses but little interest. The
army with all the expedition they could make, and for
which the species of force was peculiarly favorable,
failed to surprise the Indians. These latter opposed
no resistance of importance to the advance of the army.
Occasionally, a straggling party would fire upon the
Kentuckians, but never waited to receive a similar
c:mpliment in return. Seven Indians were taken
prisoners, and three or four killed ; one of them an old
chief, too infirm to fly, was killed by Major McGary.
The towns of the Indians were burnt, and their fields
devastated. The expedition returned to Kentucky
ATTACK ON CRAB ORCHARD SETTLEMENT. 207
vvk'i ',he loss of four men, two of whom were acci-
dentsv1y killed by their own comrades.
This invasion, though apparently so barren of re-
sult, is supposed to have produced a beneficial effect,
by impressing the Indians with the numbers and cour-
age of the Kentuckians. They appear from this time
to have given up the expectation of reconquering the
country, and confined their hostilities to the rapid in-
cursions of small bands.
During the expedition of Clark, a party of Indians
penetrated to the Crab Orchard settlement. They made
an attack upon a single house, containing only a
woman, a negro man, and two or three children. One
of the Indians, who had been sent in advance to re-
connoitre, seeing the weakness of the garrison, thought
to get all the glory of the achievement to himself.
He boldly entered the house and seized the negro,
who proving strongest, threw him on the floor, when
the woman dispatched him with an axe. The other
Indians coming up, attempted to force open the door
which had been closed by the children during the
scuffle. There was no gun in the hoase, but the
woman seized an old barrel of one, and thruat the muz-
zle through the logs, at which the Indians retreated.
208 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
The year 1783 passed away without any disturbance
from the Indians, who were restrained by the deser-
tion of their allies the British. In 1784, the southern
frontier of Kentucky was alarmed by the rumor of an
intended invasion by the Cherokees, and some prepa-
rations were made for an expedition against them,
which fell through, however, because there was no au-
thority to carry it on. The report of the hostility of
the Cherokees proved to be untrue.
Meanwhile difficulties arose in performance of the
terms of the treaty between England and the United
States. They appear to have originated in a dispute
in regard to an article contained in the treaty, provid-
ing that the British army should not carry away with
them any negroes or other property belonging to the
American inhabitants. In consequence of what they
deemed an infraction of this article, the Virginians
refused to comply with another, which stipulated fur
the repeal of acts prohibiting the collection of debts
due to British subjects. The British, on the other
hand, refused to evacuate the western posts till this
article was complied with. It was natural that the
intercourse which had always existed between the
Indians and the garrisons of these posts, daring the
CAUSES OF INDIAN HOSTILITY. 209
period they had acted as allies, should continue, and it
did.
In the unwritten history of the difficulties of the
United States Government with the Indian tribes
within her established boundaries, nothing appears
clearer than this truth : that the fierce and sanguinary
resistance of the aborigines to the encroachments of
the Anglo-Americans has ever been begun and con-
tinued more through the instigations of outlawed
white men, who had sought protection among them
from the arm of the law or the knife of individual
vengeance, and been adopted into their tribes, than
from the promptings of their own judgments, their
disregard of death, their thirst for the blood of their
oppressors, or their love of country.*
That their sense of wrong has at all times been
keen, their hate deadly, and their bravery great, is a
fact beyond dispute ; and that they have prized highly
their old hunting-grounds, and felt a warm and lively
attachment to their beautiful village-sites, and regarded
with especial veneration the burial-places of their
fathers, their whole history attests ; but of their own
weakness in war, before the arms and numbers of their
* Gallagher: "Hesperian," vol. i., p. 343.
14
210 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
enemies, they must have been convinced at a very
early period: and they were neither so dull in appre-
hension, nor so weak in intellect, as not soon to have
perceived the utter hopelessness, and felt the mad folly,
of a continued contest with their invaders. Long
before the settlement of the whites upon this conti-
nent, the Indians had been subject to bloody and ex-
terminating wars among themselves; and such con-
flicts had generally resulted in the flight of the weaker
partv toward the West, and the occupancy of their
lands by the conquerors. Many of the tribes had a
tradition among them, and regarded it as their un-
changeable destiny, that they were to journey from
the rising to the setting sun, on their wajr to the bright
waters and the green forests of the "Spirit Land;"
and the working out of this destiny seems appareut,
if not in the location, course, and character of the
tumuli and other remains of the great aboriginal na-
tions of whom even tradition furnishes no account, cer-
tainly in what we know of the history of the tribes found
on the Atlantic coast by the first European settlers.
It seems fairly presumable, from our knowledge of
the history and character of the North American In-
dians, that had they been left to the promptings of
CAUSE OF INDIAN HOSTILITY. 211
their own judgments, and been influenced only by the
deliberations of their own councils, they would, after
u
a brief, but perhaps most bloody, resistance to the en-
croachments of the whites, have bowed to what would
have struck their untutored minds as an inevitable
destiny, and year after year flowed silently, as the
European wave pressed upon them, further and further
into the vast wildernesses of the mighty "West. But
left to their own judgments, or their own delibera-
tions, they never have been. Early armed by rene-
gade white men with European weapons, and taught
the improvement of their own rude instruments of
warfare, and instigated not only to oppose the strides
of their enemies after territory, but to commit depre-
dations upon their settlements, and to attempt to chas-
tise them at their very thresholds, they drew down
upon themselves the wrath of a people which is not
slow to anger, nor easily appeased ; and as far back as
the Revolution, if not as the colonizing of Massachu-
setts, their breasts were filled with a hatred of the
whites, deadly and unslumbering. Through all our
subsequent transactions with them, this feeling has
been increasing in magnitude and intensity : and re-
cent events have carried it to a pitch which will
212 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
render it enduring forever, perhaps not in its activity,
but certainly in its bitterness. Whether more ami-
cable relations with the whites, during the first settle-
ments made upon this continent by the Europeans,
would have changed materially the ultimate destiny
of the aboriginal tribes, is a question about which di-
versities of opinion may well be entertained ; but it is
not to be considered here.
The fierce, and bloody, and continuous opposition
which the Indians have made from the first to the en-
croachments of the Anglo-Americans, is matter of
history ; and close scrutiny will show, that the great
instigators of that opposition have always, or nearly
so, been renegade white men. Scattered through the
tribes east of the Alleghanies, before and during the
American Eevolution, there were many such mis-
creants. Among the Western tribes, during the early
settlement of Kentucky and Ohio, and at the period
of the last war with Great Britain, there were a num-
ber, some of them men of talent and great -activity.
One of the boldest and most notorious of these latter,
was one whom we have had frequent occasion to
mention, Simon Girty — for many years the scourge
of the infant settlements in the West, the terror of
girty's treachery. 213
women, and the bugaboo of children. This man wag
an adopted member of the great Wyandot nation,
among whom he ranked high as an expert hunter, a
brave warrior, and a powerful orator. His influence
extended through all the tribes of the West, and was
generally exerted to incite the Indians to expeditions
against the " Stations" of Kentucky, and to acts of
cruelty to their white prisoners. The bloodiest coun-
sel was usually his; his was the voice which was
raised loudest against his countrymen, who were pre-
paring the way for the introduction of civilization
and Christianity into this glorious region ; and in all
great attacks upon the frontier settlements he was one
of the prime movers, and among the prominent
leaders.
Of the causes of that venomous hatred, which
rankled in the bosom of Simon Girty against his
countrymen, we have two or three versions : such as,
that he early imbibed a feeling of contempt and ab-
horrence of civilized life, from the brutality of his
father, the lapse from virtue of his mother, and the
corruptions of the community in which he had his
birth and passed his boyhood ; that, while acting with
the whites against the Indians on the Virginia border,
214 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
lie was stung to the quick, and deeply offended by the
appointment to a station over his head, of one who
was his junior in years, and had rendered nothing-
like his services to the frontiers; and that, when
attached as a scout to Dunmore's expedition, an in-
dignity was heaped upon him which thoroughly
soured his nature, and drove him to the Indians, that
he might more effectually execute a vengeance which
he swore to wreak. The last reason assigned for his
defection and animosity is the most probable of the
three, rests upon good authority, and seems sufficient,
his character considered, to account for his desertion
and subsequent career among the Indians.
The history of the indignity alluded to, as it has
reached the writer* from one who was associated with
Girty and a partaker in it, is as follows : The two
were acting as scouts in the expedition set on foot by
Governor Dunmore, of Virginia, in the year 1774,
against the Indian towns of Ohio. The two divisions
of the force raised for this expedition, the one com-
manded by Governor Dunmore in person, the other
by General Andrew Lewis, were by the orders of the
governor to form a junction at Point Pleasant, where
* Gallagher.
girty's treachery. 215
the Great Kenhawa empties into the Ohio. At this
place, General Lewis arrived with his command on
the eleventh or twelfth of September; but after re-
maining here two or three weeks in anxious expecta-
tion of the approach of the other division, he received
dispatches from the governor, informing him that
Dunmore had changed his plan, and determined to
march at once against the villages on the Scioto, and
ordering him to cross the Ohio immediately and join
him as speedily as possible. It was during the delay
at the Point that the incident occurred which is sup-
posed to have had such a tremendous influence upon
Girty's after-life. He and his associate scout had ren-
dered some two or three months' services, for which
they had as yet drawn no part of their pay; and in
their present idleness they discovered means of enjoy-
ment, of which they had not money to avail them-
selves. In this strait, they called upon Gen. Lewis in
person, at his quarters, and demanded their pay. For
some unknown cause this was refused, which produced
a slight murmuring on the part of the applicants,
when General Lewis cursed them, and struck them
several severe blows over their heads with his cane.
Girty's associate was not much hurt ; but he himself
216 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
was so badly wounded op the forehead or temple that
the blood streamed down his cheek and side to the
floor. He quickly turned to leave the apartment ;
but, on reaching the door, wheeled round, planted his
feet firmly upon the sill, braced an arm against either
side of the frame, fixed his keen eyes unflinchingly
upon the general, uttered the exclamation, uBy God,
sir, your quarters shall swim in blood for this /" and in-
stantly disappeared beyond pursuit.
General Lewis was not much pleased with the sud-
den and apparently causeless change which Governor
Dunmore had made in the plan of the expedition.
Nevertheless, he immediately prepared to obey the
new orders, and had given directions for the construc-
tion of rafts upon which to cross the Ohio, when, be-
fore daylight on the morning of the 10th of October,
some of the scouts suddenly entered the encampment
with the information that an immense body of Indians
was just at hand, hastening upon the Point. This
was the force of the brave and skillful chief Corn-
stalk, whose genius and valor were so conspicuous on
that day, throughout the whole of which raged the
hardly-contested and most bloody Battle of the Point.
Girty had fled from General Lewis immediately to the
.
gikty's treachery. 217
chief Cornstalk, forsworn his white nature, and
leagued himself with the Eedman forever ; and with
the Indians he was now advancing, under the cover
of night, to surprise the Virginian camp. At the dis-
tance of only a mile from the Point, Cornstalk was
met by a detachment of the Virginians, under the
command of Colonel Charles Lewis, a brother of the
general ; and here, about sunrise on the 10th of Oc-
tober, 1774, commenced one of the longest, severest,
and bloodiest battles ever fought upon the Western
frontiers. It terminated, as we have seen, about sun-
set, with the defeat of the Indians it is true, but with
a loss to the whites which carried mourning into
many a mansion of the Old Dominion, and which was
keenly felt throughout the country at the time, and
remembered with sorrow long after.
Girty having thrown himself among the Indians, as
has been related, and embraced their cause, now re-
treated with them into the interior of Ohio, and ever
after followed their fortunes without swerving. On
arriving at the towns of the Wyandots, he was adopted
into that tribe, and established himself at Upper San-
dusky. Being active, of a strong constitution, fear-
less in the extreme, and at all times ready to join
218 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
their war parties, he soon became very popular among
his new associates, and a man of much consequence.
lie was engaged in most of the expeditions against
the frontier settlements of Pennsylvania and Virginia
— always brave and always cruel — till the year 1778,
when occurred an incident which, as it is the only
bright spot apparent on the whole dark career of the
renegade, shall be related with some particularity.
Girty happened to be at Lower Sandusky this year,
when Kenton — known at that period as Simon Butler
— was brought in to be executed by a party of Indians
who had made him a prisoner on the banks of the
Ohio. Years before, Kenton and Girty had been
bosom companions at Fort Pitt, and served together
subsequently in the commencement of Dunmore's ex-
pedition ; but the victim was already blackened for
the stake, and the renegade failed to recognize in him
his former associate. Girty had at this time but just
returned from an expedition against the frontier of
Pennsylvania, which had been less successful than he
had anticipated, and was enraged by disappointment.
He, therefore, as soon as Kenton was brought into the
village, began to give vent to a portion of his spleen
by cuffing and kicking the prisoner, whom he event-
GIRTY RESCUES KENTON. 219
ually knocked down. He knew that Kenton had
come from Kentucky ; and this harsh treatment was
bestowed in part, it is thought, to frighten the pris-
oner into answers of such questions as he might wish
to ask him. He then inquired how many men there
were in Kentucky. Kenton could not answer this
question, but ran over the names and ranks of such
of the officers as he at the time recollected. " Do you
know William Stewart?" asked Grirty. "Perfectly
well," replied Kenton ; "he is an old and intimate
acquaintance." "Ah! what is your name, then?''
" Simon Butler," answered Kenton ; and on the in
stant of this announcement the hardened renegade
caught his old comrade by the hand, lifted him from
the ground, pressed him to his bosom, asked his for-
giveness for having treated him so brutally, and prom-
ised to do every thing in his power to save his life,
and set him at liberty. "Syme!" said he, weeping
like a child, " you are condemned to die, but it shall
go hard with me, I tell you, but I will save you from
that."
There have been various accounts given of this in
teresting scene, and all agree in representing Girty as
having been deeply affected, and moved for the mo-
220 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
ment to penitence and tears. The foundation of Mc-
Clung's detail of the speeches made upon the occasion
was a manuscript dictated by Kenton himself a num-
ber of years before his death. From this writer we
therefore quote :
"As soon as Girty heard the name he became
strongly agitated; and, springing from his seat, he
threw his arms around Kenton's neck, and embraced
him with much emotion. Then turning to the assem-
bled warriors, who remained astonished spectators of
this extraordinary scene, he addressed them in. a short
speech, which the deep earnestness of his tone, and
the energy of his gesture, rendered eloquent. He
informed them that the prisoner, whom they had just
condemned to the stake, was his ancient comrade and
bosom friend ; that they had traveled the same war-
path, slept upon the same blanket, and dwelt in the
same wigwam. He entreated them to have com-
passion on his feelings — to spare him the agony of
witnessing the torture of an old friend by the hands of
his adopted brothers, and not to refuse so trifling a
favor as the life of a white man to the earnest inter-
cession of one who had proved, by three years' faith-
GIRTY AND KENTON. 221
fill service, that lie was sincerely and zealously devoted
tc the cause of the Indians.
" The speech was listened to in unbroken silence.
As soon as he had finished, several chiefs expressed
their approbation by a deep gutteral interjection, while
others were equally as forward in making known
their objections to the proposal. They urged that his
fate had already been determined in a large and sol-
emn council, and that they would be acting like
squaws to change their minds every hour. They in-
sisted upon the flagrant misdemeanors of Kenton —
that he had not only stolen their horses, but had
flashed his gun at one of their young men — that it
was vain to suppose that so bad a man could ever be-
come an Indian at heart, like their brother Girty —
that the Kentuckians were all alike — very bad people
— and ought to be killed as fast as they were taken —
and finally, they observed that many of their people
had come from a distance, solely to assist at the tor-
ture of the prisoner, and pathetically painted the dis-
appointment and chagrin with which they would hear
that all their trouble had been for nothing.
"Girty listened with obvious impatience to the
young warriors who had so ably argued against a re-
222 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
prieve — and starting to his feet, as soon as the others
had concluded, he urged his former request with great
.earnestness. He briefly, but strongly recapitulated
his own services, and the many and weighty instances
of attachment he had given. He asked if he could be
suspected of partiality to the whites ? When had he
ever before interceded for any of that hated race?
Had he not brought seven scalps home with him from
the last expedition ? and had he not submitted seven
white prisoners that very evening to their discretion?
Had he ever expressed a wish that a single captive
should be saved ? This was his first and should be
his last request : for if they refused to him, wh.at was
never refused to the intercession of one of their
natural chiefs, he would look upon himself as dis-
graced in their eyes, and considered as unworthy of
confidence. Which of their own natural warriors had
been more zealous than himself? From what expe-
dition had he ever shrunk ? — what white man had ever
seen his back ? Whose tomahawk had been bloodier
than his ? He would say no more. He asked it as a
£rst and last favor, as an evidence that they approved
of his zeal and fidelity, that the life of his bosom
friend might be spared. Fresh speakers arose upon
GIRTY AND KENTON. 223
each side, and the debate was carried on for an hour
and a half with great heat and energy.
"During the whole of this time, Kenton's feelings
may readily be imagined. He could not understand
a syllable of what was said. He saw that Girty spoke
with deep earnestness, and that the eyes of the as-
sembly were often turned upon himself with various
expressions. He felt satisfied that his friend was
pleading for his life, and that he was violently op-
posed by a large part of the council. At length the
war-club was produced, and the final * vote taken.
Kenton watched its progress with thrilling emotion —
which yielded to the most rapturous delight, as he
perceived that those who struck the floor of the coun-
cil-house, were decidedly inferior in number to those
who passed it in silence. Having thus succeeded in
his benevolent purpose, Girty lost no time in attend-
ing to the comfort of his friend. He led him into his
own wigwam, and from his own store gave him a pair
of moccasins and leggins, a breech-cloth, a hat, a coat,
a handkerchief for his neck, and another for his head."
In the course of a few weeks, and after passing
through some farther difficulties, in which the rene-
gade again stood by him faithfully, Kenton was sent
224 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
to Detroit, from which place he effected his escape
and returned to Kentucky. Girty remained with the
Indians, retaining his old influence, and continuing
his old career ; and four years after the occurrences
last detailed, in 1782, we find him a prominent figure
in one of the blackest, tragedies that have ever dis-
graced the annals of mankind. It is generally be-
lieved, by the old settlers and their immediate de-
scendants, that the influence of Girty at this period,
over the confederate tribes of the whole northwest,
was almost supreme. He had, it is true, no delegated
authority, and of course was powerless as regarded
the final determination of any important measure ; but
his voice was permitted in council among the chiefs,
and his inflaming harangues were always listened to
with delight by the young warriors. Among the
sachems and other head-men, he was what may well
be styled a "power behind the throne;" and as it is
well known that this unseen power is often " greater
than the throne itself," it may reasonably be presumed
that Girty's influence was in reality all which it is
supposed to have been. The horrible event alluded
to above, was the Burning of Craivford; and as a
knowledge of this dark passage in his life, is neces-
CRAWFORD'S EXPEDITION-. i 225
sary to a fall development of the character of the
renegade, an account of the incident, as much con*
densed as possible, will be given from the histories
of the unfortunate campaign of that year.
The frontier settlements of Pennsylvania and Vir-
ginia, had been greatly harassed by repeated attacks
from bands of Indians under Girty and some of the
Wyandot and Shawnee chiefs, during the whole
period of the Eevolutionary War ; and early in the
spring of 1782, these savage incursions became so fre-
quent and galling, and the common mode of fighting
the Indians on the line of frontier, when forced to do
so in self-defense, proved so inefficient, that it was
found absolutely necessary to carry the war into the
country of the enemy. For this purpose an expedi-
tion against the Wyandot towns on the Sandusky,
was gotten up in May, and put under the command
of Colonel William Crawford, a brave soldier of the
Eevolution. This force, amounting to upward of four
hundred mounted volunteers, commenced its march
through the wilderness northwest of the Ohio River,
on the 25th of May, and reached the plains of the
Sandusky on the 5th of June. A spirit of insubordi-
nation had manifested itself during the march, and ou
15
226 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
one occasion a small body of the volunteers abandoned
■the expedition and returned to their homes. The dis-
affection which had prevailed on the march, continued
to disturb the commander and divide the ranks, after
their arrival upon the very site (now deserted tempo-
rarily) of one of the enemy's principal towns ; and the
officers, yielding to the wishes of their men, had actu
ally determined, in a hasty council, to abandon the
objects of the expedition and return home, if they did
not meet with the Indians in large force in the course
of another day's march. Scarcely had this determi-
nation been announced, however, when Colonel Craw-
ford received intelligence from his scouts, of the near
approach of a large body of the enemy. Preparations
were at once made for the engagement, which almost in-
stantly commenced. It was now about the middle of the
afternoon ; and from this time till dusk the firing was
hot and galling on both sides. About dark the Indians
drew off their force, when the volunteers encamped
upon the battle-ground, and slept on their arms.
The next day, the battle was renewed by small de-
tachments of the enemy, but no general engagement
took place. The Indians had suffered severely from
the close firing which ensued upon their first attack,
RETREAT OF CRAWFORD'S TROOPS. 227
and were now maneuvering and awaiting the arrival
of reinforcements. No sooner had nigrrt closed upon
this madly spent clay, than the officers assembled in
council. They were unanimous in the opinion that
the enemy, already as they thought more numerous
than their own force, was rapidly increasing in num-
bers. They therefore determined, without a dissent-
ing voice, to retreat that night, as rapidly as circum-
stances would permit. This resolution was at once
announced to the whole body of volunteers, and the
arrangements necessary to cany it into effect were
immediately commenced. By nine or ten o'clock
every thing was in readiness — the troops properly
disposed — and the retreat begun in good order. But
unfortunately, says McClung, "they had scarcely
moved an hundred paces, when the report of several
rifles was heard in the rear, in the direction of the In-
dian encampment. The troops instantly became very
unsteady. At length a solitary voice, in the front
rank, called out that their design was discovered, and
that the Indians would soon be upon them. Nothing
more was necessary. The cavalry were instantly
broken; and, as usual, each man endeavored to save
himself as he best could. A prodigious uproar en
•-
228 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
sued, which quickly communicated to the enemy that
the white men had routed themselves, and that they
had nothing to do but pick up stragglers." A scene
of confusion and carnage now took place, which
almost beggars description. All that night and for
the whole of the next day, the work of hunting out,
running down, and butchering, continued without in-
termission. But a relation of these sad occurrences
does not properly belong to this narrative. The brief
account of the expedition which has been given, was
deemed necessary as an introduction to the event •
which now claims attention.
Among the prisoners taken by the Indians, were
Colonel Crawford, the commander, and Dr. Knight of
Pittsburg, who had gone upon the expedition as sur-
geon. On the 10th of June, these gentlemen were
marched toward the principal town of the Wyaudots,
where they arrived the next day. Here they beheld
the mangled bodies of some of their late companions,
and were doomed to see others, yet living, butchered
before their eyes. Here, likewise, they saw Simon
Girty, who appeared to take an infernal delight in
gazing upon the dead bodies, and viewing the tortures
which were inflicted upon the living. The features
BURNING OF CRAWFORD. "229
of this wretch, who had known Colonel Crawford at
Fort Pitt, were clad in malicious smiles at beholding
the brave soldier in his present strait ; and toward Dr.
Knight he conducted himself with insolence as well
as barbarity. The Colonel was soon stripped naked,
painted black, and commanded to sit down by a large
fire which was blazing close at hand ; and in this situ-
ation he was surrounded by all the old women and
young boys of the town, and severely beaten with
sticks and clubs. While this was going on, the In-
dians were sinking a large 'stake in the ground, and
building a circle of brushwood and hickoiy sticks
around it, with a diameter of some twelve or fifteen
feet. These preparations completed, Crawford's hands
were tied firmly behind his back, and by his wrists he
was bound to the stake. The pile was then fired in
several places, and the quick flames curled into the
air. Girty took no part in these operations, but sat
upon his horse at a little distance, observing them
with a malignant satisfaction. Catching his eye at
the moment the pile was fired, Crawford inquired of
the renegade if the savages really meant to burn him.
Girty coldly answered "Yes," and the Colonel calmly
resigned himself to his fate. The whole scene is
230' LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE;
minutely described in the several histories which have
been written of this unfortunate expedition ; but the
particulars are too horrible to be dwelt upon hero
For more than two hours did the gallant soldier sur-
vive at that flame-girdled stake ; and during the latter
half of this time, he was put to every torture which
savage ingenuity could devise, and hellish vengeance
execute. Once only did a word escape his lips. In
the extremity of his agony he again caught the eye
of Girty ; and he is reported to have exclaimed at this
time, " Girty ! Girty ! shoot me through the heart !
Do not refuse me ! quick ! — quick !" And it is said
that the monster merely replied, " Don't you see I
have no gun, Colonel ?" then burst into a loud laugh
and turned away. Crawford said no more ; he sank
repeatedly beneath the pain and suffocation which he
endured, and was as often aroused by a new torture ;
but in a little while the " vital spark" fled, and the
black and swollen body lay senseless at the foot of
the stake.
Dr. Knight was now removed from the spot, and
placed under the charge of a Shawanee warrior to be
taken to Chillicothe, where he was to share in the ter-
rible fate of his late companion. The Doctor, how-
PARTICULAES OF GIETY's LIFE. 231
ever, was fortunate enough to effect his escape ; and
after wandering through the wilderness for three
weeks, in a state bordering on starvation, he reached
Pittsburg. He had been an eye-witness of all the
tortures inflicted upon the Colonel, and subsequently
published a journal of the expedition ; and it is from
this that the particulars have been derived of the
several accounts which have been published of the
Burning of Crawford*
It was not to be expected that such a man as Simon
Girty could, for a great many years, maintain his in-
fluence among a people headed by chiefs and warriors
like Black-Hoof, Buckongahelas, Little Turtle, Tarhe,
and so forth. Accordingly we find the ascendancy of
the renegade at its height about the period of the ex-
pedition against Bryant's Station, already described ;
and not long after this it began to wane, when, dis-
content and disappointment inducing him to give way
to his natural appetites, he partook freely of all intoxi
eating liquors, and in the course of a few years becam6
a beastly drunkard. It is believed that he at one time
seriously meditated an abandonment of the Indians,
and a return to the whites ; and an anecdote related
* Gallagher.
232 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
by McClung, in his notice of the emigration to Ken-
tucky, by way of the Ohio Kiver, in the year 1785,
would seem to give color to this opinion. But if the
intention ever was seriously indulged, it is most likely
that fear of the treatment he would receive on being
recognized in the frontier settlements, on account of
his many bloody enormities, prevented him from car-
rying it into effect. He remained with the Indians in
Ohio till "Wayne's victory, when he forsook the scenes
of his former influence and savage greatness, and
established himself somewhere in Upper Canada. He
fought in the bloody engagement which terminated
in the defeat and butchery of St. Clair's army in 1791,
and was at the battle of the Fallen Timbers in 1794 ;
but he had no command in either of those engage-
ments, and was not at this time a man of any particu-
lar influence.
In Canada, Girty was something of a trader, but
gave himself up almost wholly to intoxicating drinks,
and became a perfect sot. At this time he suffered
much from rheumatism and other diseases; but he
had grown a great braggart, and amidst his severest
pains he would entertain his associates, and all who
were willing to listen, with stories of his past prowess
BIRTH-PLACE OF GIRTY. 233
and cruelty. lie bad now the most exaggerated no-
tions of the honor attaching to the character of a great
warrior ; and for some years before his death his con-
stantly-expressed wish was, that he might find an
opportunity of signalizing his last years by some
daring action, and die upon the field of battle.
Whether sincere in this wish or not, the opportunity
was afforded him. He fought with the Indians at
Proctor's defeat on the Thames in 1814, and was
among those who were here cut down and trodden
under foot by Colonel Johnson's regiment of mounted
Kentuckians.
Of the birth-place and family of Simon Girty we
have not been able to procure any satisfactory infor-
mation. It is generally supposed, from the fact that
nearly all of his early companions were Virginians,
that he was a native of the Old Dominion ; but one
of the early pioneers, (yet living in Franklin County,)
who knew Girty at Pittsburg before his defection,
thinks that his native State was Pennsylvania. This
venerable gentleman is likewise of the opinion, that' it
was the disappointment of not getting an office to
which he aspired that first filled Girty's breast with
234 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
hatred of the whites, and roused in him those dark
thoughts and bitter feelings which subsequently, on the
occurrence of the first good opportunity, induced him
to desert his countrymen and league himself with the
Indians. That Girty was an applicant or candidate
for some office, and was defeated in his efforts to ob-
tain it by an individual who was generally considered
less deserving of it than he, my informant has distinct
recollections ; and also remembers that his defeat was
occasioned principally through the exertions, in be-
half of his opponent, of Colonel William Crawford.
This affords a key to the cause of Girty's fiendlike
conduct toward the Colonel when, some ten years
afterward, the latter was bound to the stake at one of
the Wyandot towns, and in the extremity of his
agony besought the renegade to put an end- to his
misery by shooting him through the heart : it offers
no apology, however, for Girty's brutality on that
occasion.
The career of the renegade, commenced by treason
and pursued through blood to the knee, affords a good
v
lesson, which might well receive some remark ; b'it
this narrative has already extended to an unexpected
LESSON OF GIRTY'S LIFE. 235
ienvth, and must here close. It is a dark record ; but
the histories of all new countries contain somewhat
similar passages, and their preservation in this form
may ml Ve >lk§ether without usefulness*
* Gallagher.
CHAPTER XVIII.
Season of repose — Colone1 Boone buys land — Builds a log-house
and goes to farming — Kentucky organized on a new basis — The
three Counties united in one district, and Courts established —
Colonel Boone surprised by Indians — Escapes by a bold strat-
agem— Increase of emigration — Transportation of goods com-
mences— Primitive manners and customs of the settlers —
Hunting — The autumn hunt — The hunting camp— Qualifi-
cations of a good hunter — Animals hunted — Tbe process of
building and furnishing a cabin — The house-warming.
After the series of Indian hostilities recorded in
the chapters immediately preceding this, Kentucky
enjoyed a season of comparative repose. The cessa-
tion of hostilities between the United States and Great
Britain in 1783, and the probable speedy cession of
the British posts on the Northwestern frontier, dis-»
couraged the Indians, stopped their customary incur-
sions on the Kentuckians, and gave them leisure to
acquire and cultivate new tracts of land.
Colonel Boone, notwithstanding the heavy loss of
(236)
NEW ORGANIZATION. 237
money (which, has been already mentioned) as he was
on his journey to North Carolina, was now able to pur-
chase several locations of land. He had been com-
pensated for his military services by the Common-
wealth of Virginia, to which Kentucky still belonged.
On one of his locations he built a comfortable log-
house and recommenced farming, with his usual in-
dustry and perseverance, varying the pursuits of
agriculture with occasional indulgence in his favorite
sport of hunting.
In 1783 Kentucky organized herself on a new basis,
Virginia having united the three counties into one
district, having a court of common law and chancery
for the whole territory which now forms the State of
Kentucky. The seat of justice at first was at Har-
rodsburg; but for want of convenient accommodations
for the sessions of the courts, they were subsequently
removed to Danville, which, in consequence, became
for a season the centre and capital of the State.*
A singular and highly characteristic adventure, in
which Boone was engaged about this time, is thus
narrated by Mr. Peck :
'' Though no hostile attacks from Indians disturbed
* Perkins. Peck.
2.r;8 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the settlements, still there were small parties discov-
ered, or signs seen on the frontier settlements. On
one occasion, about this period, four Indians came tc
the farm of Colonel Boone, and nearly succeeded in
taking him prisoner. The particulars are given as
they were narrated by Boone himself, at the wedding
of a granddaughter, a few months before his decease,
and they furnish an illustration of his habitual self-
possession and tact with Indians. At a short distance
from his cabin he had raised a small patch of tobacco
to supply his neighbors, (for Boone never used the
'filthy weed' himself,) the amount, perhaps, of one
hundred and fifty hills.
"As a shelter for caring it, he had built an enclosure
of rails, a dozen feet in height, and covered it with
cane and grass. Stalks of tobacco are usually split
and strung on sticks about four feet in length. The
ends of these are laid on poles, placed across the
tobacco house, and in tiers, one above the other to the
roof. Boone had fixed his temporary shelter in such
a manner as to have three tiers. He had covered the
lower tier, and the tobacco had become dry, when he
entered the shelter for the purpose of removing the
sticks to the upper tier, preparatory to gathering the
BOLD ESCAPE FROM INDIANS. 239
remainder of the crop. lie had hoisted up the sticks
from the lower to the second tier, and was standing on
the poles that supported it while raising the sticks to
the upper tier, when four stout Indians, with guns,
entered the low door and called him by name. ' Now,
Boone, we got you. You no get away more. We
carry you off to Chillicothe this time. You no cheat
us any more.' Boone looked down upon their up-
turned faces, saw their loaded guns pointed at his
breast, and recognizing some of his old friends, the
Shawanees, who had made him prisoner near the Blue
Licks in 1778, coolly and pleasantly responded, ' Ah !
old friends, glad to see you.' Perceiving that they
manifested impatience to have him come down, he
told them he was quite willing to go with them, and
only begged they would wait where they were, and
watch him closely, until he could finish removing his
tobacco.
While parleying with them, inquiring after old ac-
quaintances, and proposing to give them his tobacco
when cured, he diverted their attention from his pur-
pose, until he had collected together a number of
sticks of dry tobacco, and so turned them as to fall
between the poles directly in their faces. At the same
240 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
instant, he jumped upon them with as much of the
dry tobacco as he could gather in his arms, filling
their mouths and eyes with its pungent dust; and
blinding and disabling them from following him,
rushed out and hastened to his cabin, where he had
the means of defense. Notwithstanding the narrow
escape, he could not resist the temptation, after re-
treating some fifteen or twenty yards, to look round
and see the success of his achievement. The Indians,
blinded and nearly suffocated, were stretching out
<;heir hands and feeling about in different directions,
calling him by name and cursing him for a- rogue, and
themselves for fools. The old man, in telling the
story, imitated their gestures and tones of voice with
great glee.
Emigration to Kentucky was now rapidly on the
increase, and many new settlements were formed.
The means of establishing comfortable homesteads in-
creased. Horses, cattle, and swine were rapidly in
creasing in number; and trading in various commo-
dities became more general. From Philadelphia,
merchandise was transported to Pittsburg on pack
horses, and thence taken down the Ohio Eiver in flat-
boats and distributed among the settlements on its
- i
i' i
i »J
n hi hi v\ ■■■
HUNTING IN KENTUCKY. 241
banks. Country stores, land speculators, and paper
money made their appearance, affording a clear
augury of the future activity of the West in com-
mercial industry and enterprise.
Most of the settlers came from the interior of North
Carolina and Virginia ; and brought with them the
manners and customs of those States. These man-
ners and customs were primitive enough. The fol-
lowing exceedingly graphic description, which we
transcribe from " Doddridge's Notes," will afford the
reader a competent idea of rural life in the times of
Daniel Boone.
" Hunting. — This was an important part of the em-
ployment of the early settlers of this country. For some
years the woods supplied them with the greater amount
of their subsistence, and with regard to some families,
at certain times, the whole of it ; for it was no uncom--
mon thing for families to live several months without a
mouthful of bread. It frequently happened that there
was no breakfast until it was obtained from the
woods. Fur and peltry were the people's money.
They had nothing else to give in exchange for rifles,
salt, and iron, on the other side of the mountains.
" The fall and early part of the winter was the season
16
242 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
for hunting deer, and the whole of the winter, in-
cluding part of the spring, for bears and fur-skinned
animals. It was a customary saying that fur is good
during every month in the name of which the letter
It occurs.
" The class of hunters with whom I was best ac-
quainted, were those whose hunting ranges were on
the eastern side of the river, and at the distance of
eight or nine miles from it. As soon as the leaves
were pretty well down, and the weather became rainy,
accompanied with light snows, these men, after acting
the part of husbandmen, so far as the state of warfare
permitted them to do so, soon began to feel that they
were hunters. They became uneasy at home. Every
thing about them became disagreeable. The house
was too warm. The feather-bed too soft, and even
the good wife was not thought, for the time being, a
proper companion. The mind of the hunter was
wholly occupied with the camp and chase.
" I have often seen them get up early in the morning
at this season, walk hastily out, and look anxiously to
the woods and snuff the autumnal winds with the high-
est rapture, then return into the house and cast a quick
and attentive look at the rifle, which was always sus-
A HUNTING CAMP. 243
pendcd to a joist by a couple of buck horns, or little
forks. His hunting dog, understanding the intentions
of his master, would wag his tail, and by every bland-
ishment in his power express his readiness to accom-
pany him to the woods.
" A day was soon appointed for the march of the little
cavalcade to the camp. Two or three horses furnished
with pack-saddles were loaded with flour, Indian meal,
blankets, and every thing else requisite for the use of
the hunter.
" A hunting camp, or what was called a half- faced
cabin, was of the following form ; the back part of it
was sometimes a large log ; at the distance of eight or
ten feet from this, two stakes were set in the ground t
few inches apart, and at the distance of eight or ten
feet from these, two more, to receive the ends of the
poles for the sides of the camp. The whole slope of
the roof, was from the front to the back. The cover-
ing was made of slabs, skins, or blankets, or, if in the
spring of the year, the bark of hickory or ash trees.
The front was entirely open. The fire was built di-
rectly before this opening. The cracks between the
logs were filled with moss. Dry leaves served for a
bed. It is thus that a couple of men, in a few hours,
244: LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
will construct for themselves a temporary, but toler-
ably comfortable defense, from the inclemencies of the
weather. The beaver, otter, muskrat and squirrel are
scarcely their equals in dispatch in fabricating for
themselves a covert from the tempest !
" A little more pains would have made a hunting
camp a defense against the Indians. A cabin ten feet
square, bullet proof, and furnished with port-holes,
would have enabled two or three hunters to hold
twenty Indians at bay for any length of time. But
this precaution I believe was never attended to ; hence
the hunters were often surprised and killed in their
camps.
" The site for the camp was selected with all the sa-
gacity of the woodsman, so as to have it sheltered by
the surrounding hills from every wind, but more es-
pecially from those of the north and west.
" An uncle of mine, of the name of Samuel Teter, oc-
cupied the same camp for several years in succession.
It was situated on one of the southern branches of
Cross Creek. Although I lived for many years not
more than fifteen miles from the place, it was not till
within a very few years ago that I discovered its sit-
uation. It was shown me by a gentleman living in
SKILL OF TUE HUNTER. 245
the neighborhood. Viewing the hills round about it,
I soon perceived the sagacity of the hunter in the site
for his camp. Not a wind could .touch him ; and un-
less by the report of his gun or the sound of his axe,
it would have been by mere accident if an Indian had
discovered his concealment.
" Hunting was not a mere ramble in pursuit of game,
in which there was nothing of skill and calculation ; on
the contrary, the hunter, before he set out in the morn-
ing, was informed, by the state of the weather, in what
situation he might reasonably expect to meet with his
game ; whether on the bottoms, sides or tops of the hills.
In stormy weather, the deer always seek the most
sheltered places, and the leeward side of the hills.
In rainy weather, in which there is not much wind,
they keep in the open woods on the highest ground.
" In every situation it was requisite for the hunter to
ascertain the course of the wind, so as to get the lee-
ward of the game. This he effected by putting his fin-
ger in his mouth, and holding it there until it became
warm, then holding it above -his head, the side which
first becomes cold shows which way the wind blows.
"As it was requisite too for the hunter to know the
cardinal points, he had only to observe the trees to as-
246 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL EOONE.
certain them. The bark of an aged tree is thicker and
much rougher on the north than on the south side.
The same thing may be said of the moss : it is much
thicker and stronger on the north than on the south side
of the trees.
" The whole business of the hunter consists of a suc-
cession of intrigues. From morning till night he was
on the alert to gain the wind of his game, and approach
them without being discovered. If he succeeded in
killing a deer, he skinned it, and hung it up out of the
reach of the wolves, and immediately resumed the
chase till the close of the evening, when he bent his
course toward the camp; when he arrived there he
kindled up his fire, and together with his fellow
hunter, cooked his supper. The supper finished, the
adventures of the day furnished the tales for the
evening. The spike buck, the two and three-pronged
buck, the doe and barren doe, figured through their
anecdotes with great advantage. It should seem that
after hunting awhile on the same ground, the hunters
became acquainted with nearly all the gangs of deer
within their range, so as to know each flock of ihem
when they saw them. Often some old buck, by the
means of his superior sagacity and watchfulness, saved
THE HOUSE-WARMING. 247
his little gang from the hunter's skill, by giving
timely notice of his approach. The cunning of the
hunter and that of the old buck were staked against
each other, and it frequently happened that at the
conclusion of the hunting season, the old fellow was
left the free uninjured tenant of his forest; but if his
rival succeeded in bringing him down, the victory
was followed by no small amount of boasting on the
part of the conqueror.
" When the weather was not viitable for hunting,
the skins and carcasses of the game were brought in
and disposed of.
" Many of the hunters rested from their labors on
the Sabbath clay ; some from a motive of piety ; others
said that whenever they hunted on Sunday, they were
sure to have bad luck on the rest of the week.
" The House- Warming. — I will proceed to state the
usual manner of settling a young couple in the world. .
u A spot was selected on a piece of land of one of the
parents, for their habitation. A day was appointed
shortly after their marriage, for commencing the work
of building their cabin. The fatigue-party consisted
of choppers, whose business it was to fell the trees
and cut them off tit proper lengths. A man with a
248 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
team for hauling them to the place and arranging
them, properly assorted, at the sides and ends of the
building; a carpenter, if such he might be called,
whose business it was to search the woods for a proper
tree for making clapboards for the roof. The tree for
this purpose must be straight-grained, and from three
to four feet in diameter. The boards were split four
feet long, with a large frow, and as wide as the tim-
ber would allow. They were used without planing
or shaving Another division were employed in get-
ting puncheons for the floor of the cabin ; this was
done by splitting trees, about eighteen inches in diam-
eter, and hewing the faces of them with a broad-axe.
They were half the length of the floor they were in-
tended to make. The materials for the cabin were
mostly prepared on the first day, and sometimes the
foundation laid in the evening. The second day was
allotted for the raising.
" In the morning of the next day the neighbors col-
lected for the raising. The first thing to be done was
the election of four corner men, whose business it was
to notch and place the logs. The rest of the company
furnished them with the timbers, Tii the meantime
the boards and puncheons were collecting for the floor
RAISING A LOG-HUT. 219
and roof, so that by the time the cabin was a few
rounds high, the sleepers and floor began to be laid.
The door was made by sawing or cutting the logs in
one side so as to make an opening about three feet
wide. This opening was secured by upright pieces
of timber about three inches thick, through which
holes were bored into the ends of the logs for the pur-
pose of pinning them fast. A similar opening, but
wider, was made at the end for the chimney. This
was built of logs, and made large, to admit of a back
and jambs of stone. At the square, two end logs pro-
jected a foot or eighteen inches beyond the wall, to
receive the butting poles, as they were called, against
which the ends of the first row of clapboards was sup-
ported. The roof was formed by making the end logs
shorter, until a single log formed the comb of the roof,
on these logs the clapboards were placed, the ranges
of them lapping some distance over those next below
them, and kept in their places by logs, placed at
proper distances upon them.
" The roof, and sometimes the floor, were finished on
the same clay of the raising. A third clay was corn
monly spent by a few carpenters in leveling off the
floor, making a clapboard door and a table. This last
250 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
was made of a split slab, and supported by four
round legs set in' auger-holes. Some three-legged
stools were made in the same manner. Some pins
stuck in the logs at the back of the house, supported
some clapboards which served for shelves for the table-
furniture. A single fork, placed with its lower end
in a hole in the floor, and the upper end fastened to a
joist, served for a bedstead, by placing a pole in tnc
fork with one end through a crack between the logs
of the wall. This front pole was crossed by a shorter
one within the fork, with its outer end through
another crack. From the front pole, through a crack
between the logs of the end of the house, the boards
were put on which formed the bottom of the bed.
Sometimes other poles were pinned to the fork a little
distance above these, for the purpose of supporting
the front and foot of the bed, while the walls were tho
supports of its back and head. A few pegs around
the walls for a display of the coats of the women, and
hunting-shirts of the men, and two small forks ui
buck-horns to a joist for the rifle and shot-pouch,
completed the carpenter work.
" la the mean time masons were at work. With the
heart pieced of the timber of which the clapboards
HOUSE-WARMING. 251
were made, they made billets for chunking up the
cracks between the logs of the cabin and chimney ;
a large bed of mortar was made for daubing up these
cracks ; a few stones formed the back and jambs of
the chimney.
" The cabin being finished, the ceremony of house-
warming took place, before the young couple were
permitted to move into it.
"The house-warming was a dance of a whole night's
continuance, made up of the relations of the bride and
groom aud their neighbors. On the day following
the young couple took possession of their new man-
sion."
CHAPTER XIX.
Condition of the early settlers as it respects the mechanic
arts — Want of skilled inechanics — Hominy block and hand-
mill — Sweeps — Gunpowder — Water mills — Clothing — Leathtr
— Farm tools — Wooden ware — Sports — Imitating birds —
Throwing the tomahawk — Athletic sports — Dancing — Shoot-
ing at marks — Emigration of the present time compared with
that of the early settlers — Scarcity of iron — Costume — Dwell-
ings— Furniture — Employments — The women — Their charac-
ter— Diet — Indian corn — The great improvements in facili-
tating the early settlement of the West — Amusements.
Before leaving the subject of the actual condition
of the early settlers in the "West, we take another
extract from "Doddridge's Notes," comprising his
observations on the state of the mechanic arts among
them, and an account of some of their favorite sports.
" Mechanic Arts. — In giving the history of the
state of the mechanic arts as they were exercised at
an early period of the settlement of this country, I
shall present a people, driven by necessity to perform
works of mechanical skill, far beyond what a persou
(252)
MANUFACTURES OF THE PIONEERS. 253
enjoying all the advantages of civilization would ex-
pect from a population placed in such destitute cir-
cumstances.
" My reader will naturally ask, where were their
mills for grinding grain ? "Where their tanners for
making leather ? Where their smiths' shops for making
and repairing their farming utensils ? "Who were
their carpenters, tailors, cabinet-workmen, shoemakers,
and weavers? The answer is, those manufacturers
did not exist ; nor had they any tradesmen, who were
professedly such. Every family were under the neces-
sity of doing every thing for themselves as well as
they could. The hominy block and hand-mills were
in use in most of our houses. The first was made of
a large block of wood about three feet long, with an
excavation burned in one end, wide at the top and
narrow at the bottom, so that the action of the pestle
on the bottom threw the corn up to the sides toward
the top of it, from whence it continually fell down
into tne centre.
" In consequence of this movement, the whole mass
of the grain was pretty equally subjected to the strokes
of the pestle. In the fall of the year, while the In-
dian corn was soft, the block and pestle did very well
254 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
for making meal for johnny-cake and mash ; but were
rather slow when the corn became hard.
" The sweep was sometimes used to lessen the toil of
pounding grain into meal. This was a pole of some
springy, elastic wood, thirty feet long or more ; the
butt end was placed under the side of a house, or a
large stump ; this pole was supported by two forks,
placed about one-third of its length from the butt end,
so as to elevate the small end about fifteen feet from
the ground ; to this was attached, by a large mortise,
a piece of sapling about five or six inches in diameter,
and eight or ten feet long. The lower end of this was
shaped so as to answer for a pestle. A pin of wood
was put throught it, at a proper height, so that two
persons could work at the sweep at once. This sim-
ple machine very much lessened the labor and expe-
dited the work.
" I remember that when a boy I put up an excellent
sweep at my father's. It was made of a sugar-tree
sapling. It was kept going almost constantly from
morning till night by our neighbors for a period of
several weeks.
In the Greenbriar country, where they had a num-
ber of saltpetre caves, the first settlers made plenty
MANUFACTURES OF THE PIONEERS. 255
of excellent gunpowder by the means of those sweeps
and mortars.
u A machine, still more simple than the mortar and
pestle, was used for making meal while the corn was
too soft to be beaten. It was called a grater. This
was a half-circular piece of tin, perforated with a
punch from the concave side, and nailed by its edges
to a block of wood. The ears of corn were rubbed
on the rough edge of the holes, while the meal fell
through them on the board or block, to which the
grater was nailed, which, being in a slanting direction,
discharged the meal into a cloth or bowl placed for
its reception. This, to be sure, was a slow way of
making meal ; but necessity has no law.
"The hand-mill was better thau the mortar and
grater. It was made of two circular stones, the lowest
of which was called the bed-stone, the upper one the
runner. These were pbced in a hoop, with a spout
for discharging the mea'i. A staff was let into a hole
in the upper surface of the runner, near the outer
edge, and its upper end through a hole in a board
fastened to a joist above, so that two persons could
be employed in turning the mill at the same time.
The grain was put into the opening in the runner by
256 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
hand. The mills are still in use in Palestine, the an-
cient country of the Jews. To a mill of this sort our
Saviour alluded when, with reference to the destruc-
tion of Jerusalem, he said : f Two women shall be
grinding at a mill, the one shall be taken and the
other left.'
" This mill is much preferable to that used at present
in upper Egypt for making the the dhourra bread.
It is a smooth stone, placed on an inclined plane,
upon which the grain is spread, which is made into
meal by rubbing another stone up and down upon it.
" Our first water mills were of that description de-
nominated tub-mills. It consists of a perpendicular
shaft, to the lower end of which an horizontal wheel
of about four or five feet diameter is attached, the
upper end passes through the bedstone and carries the
runner after the manner of a trundlehead. These
mills were built with very little expense, and many
of them answered the purpose very well.
" Instead of bolting cloths, sifters were in general
use. These were made of deer skins in the state of
parchment, stretched over a hoop and perforated
with a hot wire.
" Our clothing was all of domestic manufacture. "We
MANUFACTURES OF THE PIONEERS. 257
had no other resource for clothing, and this, indeed,
was a poor one. The crops of flax often failed, and
the sheep were destroyed by the wolves. Linsey,
which is made of flax and wool, the former the chain
and the latter the filling, was the warmest and most
substantial cloth we could make. Almost every
house contained a loom, and almost every woman was
a weaver,
" Every family tanned their own leather. The tan
vat was a large trough sunk to the upper edge in the
ground. A quantity of bark was easily obtained
every spring in clearing and fencing land. This, after
drying, was brought in, and in wet days was shaved
and pounded on a block of wood with an axe or
mallet. Ashes were used in place of lime for taking
off the hair. Bears' oil, hogs' lard, and tallow an-
swered the place of fish oil. The leather, to be sure,
was coarse ; but it was substantially good. The opera-
tion of currying was performed by a drawing-knife
with its edge turned, after the manner of a currying-
knife. The blocking for the leather was made of soot
and bops' lard.
" Almost every family contained its own tailors and
shoemakers. Those who could not make shoes, could
17
258 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
make slioepaeks. These, like moccasins, were made
of a single piece on the top of the foot. This was
about two inches broad, and circular at the lower
end. To this the main piece of leather was sewed,
with a gathering stitch. The seam behind was like
that of a moccasin. To the shoepack a sole was
sometimes added. The women did the tailor-work.
They could all cut-out, and make hunting-shirts, leg-
gins, and drawers.
"The state of society which exists in every country
at an early period of its settlements, is well calculated
to call into action every native mechanical genius. So it
happened in this country. There was in almost every
neighborhood, some one whose natural ingenuity
enabled him to do many things for himself and his
neighbors, far above what could have been reasonably
expected. With the few tools which they brought
with them into the country, they certainly performed
wonders. Their plows, harrows with their wooden
teeth, and sleds, were in many instances well made.
Their cooper- ware, which comprehended every thing
for holding milk and water, was generally pretty
well executed. The cedar- ware, by having alternately
a white and red stave, was then thought beautiful ;
SPORTS AND PASTIMES. 259
many of their puncheon floors were very seat, theii
joints close, and the top even and smooth. Theii
looms, although heavy, did very well. Those who
could not exercise these mechanic arts, were under
the necessity of giving labor or barter to their neigh-
bors, in exchange for the use of them, so far as their
necessities required.
" Sports. — One important pastime of our boys, was
that of imitating the noise of every bird and beast in
the woods. This faculty was not merely a pastime,
but a very necessary part of education, on account of
its utility in certain circumstances. The imitations
of the gobbling, and other sounds of wild turkeys,
often brought those keen-eyed, and ever-watchful
tenants of the forest within the reach of their rifle.
The bleating of the fawn, brought its dam to her death
in the same way. The hunter often collected a com-
pany of mopish owls to the trees about his camp, and
amused himself with their hoarse screaming ; his howl
would raise and obtain responses from a pack of
wolves, so as to inform him of their neighborhood, as
well as guard him against their depredations.
" This imitative faculty was sometimes requisite as
a measure of precaution in war. The Indians, when
260 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
scattered about in a neighborhood, often collected
together, by imitating turkeys by day, and wolves or
owls by night. In similar situations, our people did
the same. I have often witnessed the consternation
of a whole settlement, in consequence of a few
screeches of owls. An early and correct use of this
imitative faculty was considered as an indication that
its possessor would become, in due time, a good
hunter and valiant warrior. Throwing the tomahawk
was another boyish sport, in which many acquired
considerable skill. The tomahawk, with its handle
of a certain length, will make a given number of
turns in a given distance. Say in five steps, it will
strike with the edge, the handle downward ; at the
distance of seven and a half, it will strike with the
edge, the handle upward, and so on. A little experi-
ence enabled the boy to measure the distance with
his eye, when walking through the woods, and strike
a tree with his tomahawk in any way he chose.
" The athletic sports of running, jumping, and wrest-
ling, were the pastimes of boys, in common with the
men.
"A well-grown boy, at the age of twelve or thirteen
years, was furnished with a small rifle and shot-pouch.
SHOOTIXG. 261
He then became a fort-soldier, and had his port hole
assigned him. Hunting squirrels, turkeys, and
raccoons, soon made him expert in the use of his
gun.
" Dancing was the principal amusement of our young
people of both sexes. Their dances, to be sure, were
of the simplest form. Three and four-handed reels
and jigs. Country dances, cotillions, and minuets,
were unknown. I remember to have seen, once or
twice, a dance which was called "The Irish Trot,"
but I have long since forgotten its figure.
" Shooting at marks was a common diversion among
the men, when their stock of ammunition would allow
it ; this, however, was far from being always the case.
The present mode of shooting off-hand was not
then in practice. This mode was not considered
as any trial of the value of a gun, nor indeed, as
much of a test of the skill of a marksman. Their
shooting was from a rest, and at as great a distance
as the length and weight of the barrel of the gun
would throw a ball on a horizontal level. Such was
their regard to accuracy, in those sportive trials : f
their rifles, and of their own skill in the use of tbe.ni,
that they often put moss, or some other soft substance
'i62 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
on the log or stump from which they thot, for fear
of having the bullet thrown from the mark, by the
spring of the barrel. When the rifle was held to the
side of a tree for a rest, it was pressed against it as
lightly as possible, for the same reason.
" Rifles of former times were different from those of
modern date ; few of them carried more than forty live
bullets to the pound. Bullets of a less size were not
thought sufficiently heavy for hunting or war."
Our readers will pardon the length of these extracts
from Doddridge, as they convey accurate pictures of
many scenes of Western life in the times of Daniel
Boone. We add to them a single extract from " Ram-
say's Annals of Tennessee." The early settlement of
that State took place about the same time with that
of Kentucky, and was made by emigrants from the
same region. The following remarks are therefore
perfectly applicable to the pioneers of Kentucky.
" The settlement of Tennessee was unlike that of the
present new country of the United States. Emigrants
from the Atlantic cities, and from most points in the
Western interior, now embark upon steamboats or
other craft, and carrying with them all the conve-
niences and comforts of civilized life — indeed, many
SETTLEMENT OF TENNESSEE. 263
of its luxuries — are, in a few days, without toil, dan
ger, or exposure, transported to their new abodes, and
in a few months are surrounded with the appendages
of home, of civilization, and the blessings of law and
of society. The wilds of Minnesota and Nebraska,
by the agency of steam, or the stalwart arms of
Western boatmen, are at once transformed into the
settlements of a commercial and civilized people.
Independence and St. Paul, six months after they are
laid off, have their stores and their workshops, their
artisans, and their mechanics. The mantua-maker
and the tailor arrive in the same boat with the car-
penter and mason. The professional man and the
printer quickly follow. In the succeeding year the
piano, the drawing-room, the restaurant, the billiard-
table, the church bell, the village and the city in
miniature, are all found, while the neighboring in-
terior is yet a wilderness and a desert. The town and
comfort, taste and urbanity are fi>st ; the clearing,
the farmhouse, the wagon-road and the improved
country, second. It was far different on the frontier
in Tennessee. At first a single Indian trail was the
only entrance to the eastern border of it. and for many
years admitted only of the hunter and the pack-horse
264 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
It was not till the year 1776 that a wagon was seen in
Tennessee. In consequence of the want of roads — as
well as of the great distance from sources of supply —
the first inhabitants were without tools, and, of course,
without mechanics — much more, without the conve-
niences of living and the comforts of house-keeping.
Luxuries were absolutely unknown. Salt was brought
on pack-horses from Augusta and Eichmond, and
readily commanded ten dollars a bushel. The salt
gourd, in every cabin, was considered as a treasure.
The sugar-maple furnished the only article of luxury
on the frontier; coffee and tea being unknown, or
beyond the reach of the settlers, sugar was seldom
made, and was only used for the sick, or in the prep-
aration of a siveeiened dram at a wedding, or the arrival
of a new-comer. The appendages of the kitchen, the
cupboard, and the table were scanty and simple.
" Iron was brought, at great expense, from the forges
east of the mountain, on pack-horses, and was sold at
an enormous price. Its use was, for this reason, con-
fined to the construction and repair of plows and
other farming utensils. Hinges, nails, and fastenings
of that material, were seldom seen.
" The costume of the first settlers corresponded well
DRESS OF EARLY TEXNESSEANS. 265
with the style of their buildings and the quality of
their furniture. The hunting-shirt of the militiaman
and the hunter was in general use. The rest of their
apparel was in keeping with it — plain, substantial, and
well adapted for comfort, use, and economy. The
apparel of the pioneer's family was all home-made ,
and in a whole neighborhood there would not be
seen, at the first settlement of the country, a single
article of dress of foreign growth or manufacture.
Half the year, in many families, shoes were not worn.
Boots, a fur hat, and a coat with buttons on each side,
attracted the gaze of the beholder, and sometimes
received censure and rebuke. A st ranker from the
old States chose to doff his ruffles, his broadcloth, and
his queue, rather than endure the scoff and ridicule
of the backwoodsmen.
" The dwelling-house, on every frontier in Tennes-
see, was the log-cabm. A carpenter and a mason were
not needed to build them — much less the painter, the
glazier, or the upholsterer. Every settler had, besides
his rifle, no other instrument but an axe, a hatchet,
and a butcher-knife. A saw, an auger, a froe, and a
broad-axe would supply a whole settlement, and were
used as common property in the erection of the log-
266 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
cabin. The floor of the cabin was sometimes the
earth. No saw-mill was jet erected; and, if the means
or leisure of the occupant authorized it, he split out
puncheons for the floor and for the shutter of the en-
trance to his cabin. The door was hung with, wooden
binges and fastened by a wooden latch.
" Such was the habitation of the pioneer Tennes-
sean. Scarcely can one of these structures, venerable
for their years and the associations which cluster
around them, be now seen in Tennessee. Time and
improvement have displaced them. Here and there,
in the older counties, may yet be seen the old log
house, which sixty years ago sheltered the first emi-
grant, or gave, for the time, protection to a neighbor-
hood, assembled within its strong and bullet-proof
walls. Such an one is the east end of Mr. Martin's
house, at Campbell's Station, and the centre part of
the mansion of this writer, at Mecklenburg, once Gil-
liam's Station, changed somewhat, it is true, in some
of its aspects, but preserving even yet, in the height
of the story and in its old-fashioned and capacious
fire-place, some of the features of primitive architec-
ture on the frontier. Such, too, is the present dwell-
ing-house of Mr. Tipton, on Ellejoy, in Blount County,
FURNITURE OF A LOG-CABIN. 267
and that of Mr. Glasgow Snoddy, in Sevier County.
But these old buildings are becoming exceedingly
rare, and soon not one of them will be seen. Their
unsightly proportions and rude architecture will not
much longer offend modern taste, nor provoke the
idle and irreverent sneer of the fastidious and the fash-
ionable. When the last one of these pioneer houses
shall have fallen into decay and ruins, the memory of
their first occupants will still be immortal and inde-
structible.
" The interior of the cabin was no less unpretending
and simple. The whole furniture, of the one apart-
ment— answering in these primitive times the purposes
of the kitchen, the dining-room, the nursery and the
dormitory — were a plain home-made bedstead or two,
some split-bottomed chairs and stools ; a large punch-
eon, supported on four legs, used, as occasion required,
for a bench or a table, a water shelf and a bucket ;
a spinning-wheel, and sometimes a loom, finished the
catalogue. The wardrobe of the family was equally
plain and simple. The walls of the house were hung
.round with the dresses of the females, the hunting-
shirts, clothes, and the arms and shot-pouches of the
men,
268 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
" The labor and employment of a pioneer family
were distributed in accordance with surrounding cir-
cumstances. To the men was assigned the duty of
procuring subsistence and materials for clothing,
erecting the cabin and the station, opening and culti-
vating the farm, hunting the wild beasts, and repel-
ling and pursuing the Indians. The women spun the
flax, the cotton and wool, wove the cloth, made them
up, milked, churned, and prepared the food, and did
their full share of the duties of house-keeping. An-
other thus describes them : ' There we behold woman
in her true glory ; not a doll to carry silks and jewels ;
not a puppet to be dandled by fops, an idol of profane
adoration, reverenced to-day, discarded to-morrow ;
admired, but not respected ; desired, but not esteemed ;
ruling by passion, not affection ; imparting her weak-
ness, not her constancy, to the sex she should exalt ;
the source and mirror of vanity. We see her as a
wife, partaking of the cares, and guiding the labors
of her husband, and by her domestic diligence spread-
ing cheerfulness all around ; for his sake, sharing the
decent refinements of the world, without being fond
of them ; placing all her joy, all her happiness, in the
merited approbation of the man she loves. As a
SOCIETY AMONGST THE SETTLERS. 2 09
mother, we find her the affectionate, the ardent in-
structress of the children she has reared from infancy,
and trained them up to thought and virtue, to medi
tation and benevolence; addressing them as rational
b:ings, and preparing them to become men and women
in their turn.
'' ' Could there be happiness or comfort in such
dwellings and such a state of society? To those who
are accustomed to modern refinements, the truth ap-
pears like fable. The early occupants of log-cabins
were among the most happy of mankind. Exercise
and excitement gave them health ; they were practi-
cally equal; common danger made them mutually
dependant ; brilliant hopes of future wealth and dis-
tinction led them on ; and as there was ample room
for all, and as each new-comer increased individual
and general security, there was little room for that
envy, jealousy, and hatred which constitute a large
portion of human misery in older societies. Never
were the story,' the joke, the song, and the laugh
better enjoyed than upon the hewed blocks, or punch-
eon stools, around the roaring log fire of the early
Western settler. The lyre of Apollo was not hailed
with more delight in primitive Greece than the ad\ent
270 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
of the first fiddler among the dwellers of the wilder
ness ; and the polished daughters of the East never
enjoyed themselves half so well, moving to the music
of a full band, upon the elastic floor of their orna-
mented ball-room, as did the daughters of the emi-
grants, keeping time to a self-taught fiddler, on the
bare earth or puncheon floor of the primitive log-
cabin. The smile of the polished beauty is the wave
of the lake, where the breeze plays gently over it, and
her movement is the gentle stream which drains it ;
but the laugh of the log-cabin is the gush of nature's
fountain, and its movement, its leaping water.'*
" On the frontier the diet was necessarily plain and
homely, but exceedingly abundant and nutritive. The
Goshen of Americaf furnished the richest milk, the
finest butter, and the most savory and delicious meats.
In their rude cabins, with their scanty and inartificial
furniture, no people ever enjoyed in wholesome food a
greater variety, or a superior quality of the necessaries
of life. For bread, the Indian corn was exclusively
used. It was not till 1790 that the settlers on the
rich bottoms of Cumberland and Nollichucky discov-
* Kendall. t Butier.
INDIAN CORN IN TENNESSEE. 271
ered the remarkable adaptation of the soil and climate
of Tennessee to the production of this grain. Emi-
grants from James River, the Catawba, and the Santee,
were surprised at the amount and quality of the corn
crops, surpassing greatly the best results of agricul-
tural labor and care in the Atlantic States. This
superiority still exists, and Tennessee, by the census
of 1850, was the corn State. Of all the farinacea,
corn is best adapted to the condition of a pioneer peo-
ple ; and if idolatry is at all justifiable, Ceres, or
certainly the Goddess of Indian corn, should have
had a temple and a worshipers among the pioneers
of Tennessee. Without that grain, the frontier settle-
ments could not have been formed and maintained.
It is the most certain crop — requires the least prep-
aration of the ground — is most congenial to a virgin
soil — needs not only the least amount of labor in its
culture, but comes to maturity in the shortest time.
The pith of the matured stalk of the corn is esculent
and nutritious ; and the stalk itself, compressed be-
tween rollers, furnishes what is known as corn-stalk
molasses.
" This grain requires, also, the least care and trouble
in preserving it. It may safely stand all winter upon
272 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the stalk without injury from the weather or appre-
hension of damage by disease, or the accidents to
which other grains are subject. Neither smut nor
rust, nor weavil nor snow-storm, will hurt it. After
its maturity, it is also prepared for use or the granary
with little labor. The husking is a short process, and
is even advantageously delayed till the moment arrives
for using the corn. The machinery for converting it
into food is also exceedingly simple and cheap. As
soon as the ear is fully formed, it may be roasted or
boiled, and forms thus an excellent and nourishing
diet. At a later period it may be grated, and fur-
nishes, in this form, the sweetest bread. The grains
boiled in a variety of modes, either whole or broken
in a mortar, or roasted in the ashes, or popped in an
oven, are well relished. If the grain is to be con-
verted into meal, a simple tub-mill answers the pur-
pose best, as the meal least perfectly ground is always
preferred. A bolting-cloth is not needed, as it dimin
ishes the sweetness and value of the flour. The cata-
logue of the advantages of this meal might be extended
further. Boiled in water, it forms the frontier dish
called mush, which was eaten with milk, with honey,
molasses, butter or gravy. Mixed with cold water, it
VARIED USES OF INDIAN CORN. 273
is, at once, ready for the cook ; covered with hot ashes,
the preparation is called the ash cake ; placed upon a
piece of clapboard, and set near the coals, it forms the
journey-cake ; or managed in the same way, upon a
helveless hoe, it forms the hoe-cake ; put in an oven,
aud covered over with a heated lid, it is called, if in a
large mass, a pone or loaf; if in smaller quantities,
dodgers. It has the further advantage, over all other
flour, that it requires in its preparation few culinary
utensils, and neither sugar, yeast, eggs, spices, soda,
potash, or other et ceteras, to qualify or perfect the
bread. To all this, it may be added, that it is not
only cheap and well tasted, but it is unquestionably
the most wholesome and nutritive food. The largest
and healthiest people in the world have lived upon it
exclusively. It formed the principal bread of that
robust race of men — giants in miniature — which, half
a century since, was seen on the frontier.
"The dignity of history is not lowered by this
enumeration of the pre-eminent qualities of Indian
corn. The rifle and the axe have had their influence
in subduing the wilderness to the purposes of civiliza-
tion, and they deserve their eulogists and trumpeters.
Let pseans be sung all over the mighty West to Indian
18
274 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
corn— without it, the West would have still been a
wilderness. Was the frontier suddenly invaded?
Without commissary or quartermaster, or other
sources of supply, each soldier parched a peck of
corn ; a portion of it was put into his pockets, the
remainder in his wallet, and, throwing it upon his
saddle, with his rifle on his shoulder, he was ready, in
half an hour, for the campaign. Did a flood of emi-
gration inundate the frontier with an amount of con-
sumers disproportioned to the supply of grain ? The
facility of raising the Indian corn, and its early ma-
turity, gave promise and guaranty that the scarcity
would be temporary and tolerable. Did the safety of
the frontier demand the services of every adult militia-
man ? The boys and women could, themselves, raise
corn and furnish ample supplies of bread. The crop
could be gathered next year. Did an autumnal inter-
mittent confine the whole family or the entire popula-
tion to the sick bed ? This certain concomitant of
the clearing, and cultivating the new soil, mercifully
withholds its paroxysms till the crop of corn is made.
It requires no further labor or care afterward. Pasans,
say we, and a temple and worshipers, to the Creator
of Indian corn. The frontier man could gratefully
SPORTS OF THE FRONTIER. 275
say : ' He maketh me to lie down in green pastures.
He leadeth me beside the still waters. Thou preparest
a table before me in presence of mine enemies?
" The sports of the frontier men were manly,
athletic, or warlike — the chase, the bear hunt, the deer
drive, shooting at the target, throwing the tomahawk,
jumping, boxing and wrestling, foot and horse-racing.
Playing marbles and pitching dollars, cards and back-
gammon, were little known, and were considered base
or effeminate. The bugle, the violin, the fife and
drum, furnished all the musical entertainments. These
were much used and passionately admired. Weddings,
military trainings, house-raisings, chopping frolics,
were often followed with the fiddle, and dancing, and
rural sports."
CHAPTER XX.
Indian hostilities resumed — Expedition of Davis, Caffree and
McClure — Murder of Elliot — Marshall's river adventure — At-
tack on Captain Ward's boat — Affair near Scaggs' Creek —
Growth of Kentucky — Population — Trade — General Logan calls
a meeting at Danville — Danger of the country from Indian hos-
tilities, andnecessity of defense considered — Convention called
— Separation from Virginia proposed — Other conventions —
Virginia consents — Kentucky admitted as an independent
State of the Union — Indian hostilities — Expedition and death
of Colonel Christian — Attack on Higgins' Fort — Expedition of
General Clark — Its utter failure — Expedition of General Lo-
gan— Surprises and destroys a Shawanese town — Success of
Captain Hardin — Defeat of Hargrove — Affairs in Bourbon
County — Exploits of Simon Kenton — Affairs at the Elkhorn
settlements — Treaty — Harman's expedition — Final pacification
of the Indians after Wayne's victory.
KENTUCKY was not yet entirely freed from Indian
hostilities. There was no formidable invasion, such.
as to call for the exertions of Boone, Kenton and the
other warriors of the border, but there were several
occurrences which occasioned considerable alarm.
In the spring of 1784, a number of families started
(276)
INDIAN HOSTILITIES RESUMED. 277
down the Ohio from Louisville in two flat boats. They
were pursued by Indians in canoes, but awed by the
determined aspect of the whites, they drew off, without
so much as a gun being fired on either side.
This same spring a party of southern Indians stole
some horses from Lincoln County. Three young men,
Davis, Caffree and McClure, pursued them, but failing
to overtake them, concluded to make reprisals on the
nearest Indian settlement. Not far from the Tennessee
River, they fell in with an equal number of Indians.
The two parties saluted each other in a very friendly
manner, and agreed to journey in company. The
whites, however, were by no means convinced of the
sincerity of their companions, and, seeing them talking
together very earnestly, became assured of their hos-
tile intentions. It being determined to anticipate the
Indians' attack ; Caffree undertook to capture one of
them, while his companions shot the other two. Ac-
cordingly he sprung upon the nearest Indian, and bore
him to the ground ; Davis' gun missed fire but McClure
shot his man dead. The remaining Indian sprung to
a tree from which shelter he shot Caffree, who was
still struggling with the Indian he had grappled. He,
in his turn was immediately shot by McClure. The
278 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
Indian whom Caffree bad attacked, extricated himself
from the grasp of his dying antagonist, and seizing
his rifle presented it at Davis, who was coming to the
assistance of his friend. Davis took to flight, his rifle
not being in good order, and was pursued by the
Indian into the wood. McClure, loading his gun, fol-
lowed them, but lost sight of both. Davis was never
heard of afterward.
McClure now concluded to retreat, but he had not
proceeded far, before he met an Indian on horseback
attended by a boy on foot. The warrior dismounted,
and seating himself on a log, offered his pipe to Mc-
Clure. Soon other Indians were seen advancing in
the distance, when McClure's sociable friend, informed
him that when his companions came up, they would
take him (McClure) and put him on a horse, tying his
feet under its belly. In order to convey to his white
brother an adequate idea of the honor intended him,
the Indian got astride the log and locked his feet to-
gether. McClure took this opportunity of shooting
his amiable but rather eccentric companion, and then
ran off into the woods and escaped.
This affair the reader will bear in mind, was with
southern Indians, not with those of the north-western
"a warning from girty. 279
tribes, from whom the Kentuckians had suffered most
The only demonstration of hostility made by these,
this year, appears to have been the pursuit of the boats
mentioned before. In March, 1785, a man of the name
of Elliot, who had emigrated to the country near the
mouth of the Kentucky Eiver, was killed by Indians,
and his house destroyed and family dispersed.
As Colonel Thomas Marshall from Virginia was de-
scending the Ohio, in a flat boat, he was hailed from
the northern shore by a man, who announced himself
as James Girty, and said that he had been placed by
his brother Simon, to warn all boats of the danger of
being attacked by the Indians. He told them that ef-
forts would be made to decoy them ashore by means
of renegade white men, who would represent themselves
as in great distress. He exhorted them to steel their
hearts against all such appeals, and to keep the middle
of the river. He said that his brother regretted the
injuries he had inflicted upon the whites, and would
gladly repair them as much as possible, to be re-admit-
ted to their society, having lost all his influence among
the Indians. This repentance on the part of Girty
seems to have been of short duration, as he remained
among the Indians till his death, which according to
280 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
some took place at the battle of the Thames, though
others deny it.
However sincere or lasting Girty's repentance had
been, he could never have lived in safety among the
whites; he had been too active, and if common ac-
counts are to be credited, too savage in his hostility to
them, to admit of forgiveness ; and it is probable that
a knowledge of this prevented him from abandoning
the Indians.
" About the same time," says McClung, u Captain
James Ward, at present a highly-respectable citizen
of Mason County, Kentucky, was descending the Ohio,
under circumstances which rendered a rencontre with
the Indians peculiarly to be dreaded. He, together
with half a dozen others, one of them his nephew, em-
barked in a crazy boat, about forty-five feet long, and
eight feet wide, with no other bulwark than a single
pine plank, above each gunnel. The boat was much
encumbered with baggage, and seven horses were on
board. Having seen no enemy for several days, they
had become secure and careless, and permitted the
boat to drift within fifty yards of the Ohio shore.
Suddenly, several hundred Indians showed them-
selves on the bank, and running down boldly to the
ward's RENCONTRE WITH INDIANS. 281
water's edge, opened a heavy fire upon the boat. The
astonishment of the crew may be conceived.
Captain Ward and his nephew were at the oars
when the enemy appeared, and the captain knowing
that their safety depended upon their agility to regain
the middle of the river, kept his seat firmly, and ex-
erted his utmost powers at the oar, but his nephew
started up at sight of the enemy, seized his rifle, and
was in the act of leveling it, when he received a ball
in the breast, and fell dead in the bottom of the boat.
Unfortunately, his oar fell into the river, and the Cap-
tain, having no one to pull against him, rather urged
the boat nearer to the hostile shore than otherwise.
He quickly seized a plank, however, and giving his
oar to another of the crew, he took the station which
his nephew had held, and unhurt by the shower of
bullets which flew around him, continued to exert
himself until the boat had reached a more respectable
distance. He then, for the first time, looked around
him in order to observe the condition of the crew.
His nephew lay in his blood, perfectly lifeless ; the
horses had been all killed or mortally wounded. Some
had fallen overboard ; others were struggling violently,
and causing their frail bark to dip water so abundantly,
282 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
as to excite the most serious apprehensions. But the
crew presented the most singular spectacle. A captain,
who had served with reputation in the continental
array, seemed now totally bereft of his faculties. He
lay upon his back in the bottom of the boat, with
hands uplifted, and a countenance in which terror was
personified, exclaiming in a tone of despair, " Oh Lord !
Oh Lord I" A Dutchman, whose weight might amount
to about three hundred pounds, was anxiously engaged
in endeavoring to find shelter for his bulky person,
which, from the lowness of the gunnels, was a very
difficult undertaking. In spite of his utmost efforts, a
portion of his posterior luxuriance appeared above
the gunnel, and afforded a mark to the enemy, which
brought a constant shower of balls around it.
" In vain he shifted his position. The hump still
appeared, and the balls still flew around it, until the,
Dutchman losing all patience, raised his head above
the gunnel, and in a tone of querulous remonstrance,
called out, ' Oh now ! quit tat tamned nonsense, tere,
will you !' Not a shot was fired from the boat. At
one time, after they had partly regained the current,
Captain Ward attempted to bring his rifle to bear
upon them, but so violent was the agitation of the
MASSACRE NEAR SCAGG'S CREEK. 283
boat, from the furious struggles of the horses, that he
could not steady his piece within twenty yards of the
enemy, and quickly laying it aside, returned to the
oar. The Indians followed them down the river for
more than an hour, but having no canoes they did not
attempt to board ; and as the boat was at length trans-
ferred to the opposite side of the river, they at length
abandoned the pursuit and disappeared. None of the
crew, save the young man already mentioned, were
hurt, although the Dutchman's seat of honor served as
a target for the space of an hour ; and the continental
captain was deeply mortified at the sudden, and, as he
sail, 'unaccountable' panic which had seized him.
Captain Ward himself was protected by a post, which
had been fastened to the gunnel, and behind which he
sat while rowing.'-*
i*
"In October, a party of emigrants were attacked
near Scagg's Creek, and six killed. Mrs. McClure,
with four children, ran into the woods, where she
might have remained concealed, if it had not been for
the cries of her infant, whom she could not n^ake up
her mind to abandon. The Indians guided to her
* McClung.
284 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
hiding-place by these cries, cruelly tomahawked the
three oldest children, but made her prisoner with her
remaining child. Captain Whitley, with twenty-one
men, intercepted the party on its return, and dispersed
them, killing two, and wounding the same number.
The prisoners were rescued. A few days after, another
party of emigrants were attacked, and nine of them
killed. Captain Whitley again pursued the Indians.
On coming up with them, they took to flight. Three
were killed in the course of the pursuit ; two by the
gallant Captain himself. Some other depredations
were committed this year, but none of as much im-
portance as those we have mentioned."
These acts of hostility on the part of the Indians led
to the adoption of measures for the defense of the
Colony, to which we shall presently call the reader's
attention.
" Although," says Perkins,* " Kentucky grew
rapidly during the year 1784, the emigrants number-
ing twelve, and the whole population thirty thou-
sand ; although a friendly meeting was held by
Thomas J. Dal ton, with the Piankeshaws, at Yin-
* "Western Annals."
MEETING OF CONVENTION. 285
cennes, in April; and though trade was extending
itself into the clearings and among the canebrakes—
Daniel Brodhead having opened his store at Louisville
the previous year, and James Wilkinson having conic
to Lexington in Febrnaiy, as the leader of a large
commercial company, formed in Philadelphia, still
the cool and sagacious mind of Logan led him to pre-
r
pare his fellow-citizens for trial and hardships. He
called, in the autumn of 1784, a meeting of the people
at Danville, to take measures for defending the
country, and at this meeting the whole subject of the
position and danger of Kentucky was examined and
discussed, and it was agreed that a convention should
meet in December to adopt some measures for the
security of the settlements in the wilderness. Upon
the 27th of that month it met, nor was it long before
the idea became prominent that Kentucky must ask
to be severed from Virginia, and left to her own
guidance and control. But as no such conception was
general, when the delegates to this first convention
were chosen, they deemed it best to appoint a second,
to meet during the next May, at which was specially
to be considered the topic most interesting to those
who were called on to think and vote — a complete
286 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
separation from the parent State — political indepen-
dence.
Several other conventions took place, in which the
subject of a separation from Virginia was considered.
In 1786 the Legislature of Virginia enacted the neces-
sary preliminary provisions for the separation and
erection of Kentucky into an independent State, with
the condition that Congress should receive it into the
Union, which was finally effected in the year 1792.
Previously to this event, Indian hostilities were
again renewed.
"A number of Indians in April, 1786, stole some
horses from the Bear Grass settlement, with which
they crossed the Ohio. Colonel Christian pursued
them into the Indian country, and, coming up with
them, destroyed the whole party. How many there
were is not stated. The whites lost two men, one of
whom was the Colonel himself whose death was a
severe loss to Kentucky. The following affair, which
took place the same year, is given in the language of
one who participated in it •
" ' After the battle of the Blue Licks, and in 17b6
our family removed to Higgins' block-house on Lick
ing Eiver, one and a half miles above Cynthiana
HIGGINS FOliT ATTACKED. 287
Between those periods my father had been shot by the
Indians, and my mother married Samuel Van Hook,
who had been one of the party engaged in the defense
at Ruddelfs Station in 1780, and on its surrender was
carried with the rest of the prisoners to Detroit.
" ' Higgins' Fort, or block-house, had been built at
the bank of the Licking, on precipitous rocks, at least
thirty feet high, which served to protect us on every
side but one. On the morning of the 12th of June,
at daylight, the fort, which consisted of six or seven
houses, was attacked by a party of Indians, fifteen or
twenty in number. There was a cabin outside, below
the fort, where William McCombs resided, although
absent at that time. His son Andrew, and a man
hired in the family, named Joseph McFall, on making
their appearance at the door to wash themselves, were
both shot down — McCombs through the knee, and
McFall in the pit of the stomach. McFall ran to the
block-house, and McCombs fell, unable to support
himself longer, just after opening the door of his
cabin, and was dragged in by his sisters, who barri-
caded the door instantly. On the level and only ac-
cessible side there was a corn-field, and the season
oeing favorable, and the soil rich as well as new, the
288 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
corn was more than breast hieh. Here the main body
of the Indians lay concealed, while three or four who
made the attack attempted thereby to decoy the whites
outside of the defenses. Failing in this, they set fire
to an old fence and. corn-crib, and two stables, both
long enough built to be thoroughly combustible.
These had previously protected their approach in that
direction. Captain Asa Keese was in command of our
little fort. ' Boys,' said he, ' some of you must run
over to Hinkston's or Harrison's.' These were one
and a half and two miles off, but in different directions.
Every man declined. I objected, alleging as my rea-
son that he would give up the fort before I could
bring relief; but on his assurance that he would hold
out, I agreed to go. I jumped off the bank through
the thicket of trees, which broke my fall, while they
scratched my face and limbs. I got to the ground
with a limb clenched in my hands, which I had grasped
unawares in getting through. I recovered from the
jar in less than a minute, crossed the Licking, and
ran up a cow-path on the opposite side, which the
cows from one of those forts had beat down in their
visits for water. As soon as I had gained the bank I
shouted to assure my friends of my safety, and to dis-
INVASION OF INDIAN COUNTRY. 289
courage the enemy. In less than an hour I was back,
with a relief of ten horsemen, well armed, and driving
in full chase after the Indians. But they had de-
camped immediately upon hearing my signal, well
knowing what it meant, and it was deemed imprudent
to pursue them with so weak a party — the whole force
in Higgins' block-house hardly sufficing to guard the
women and children there. McFall, from whom the
bullet could not be extracted, lingered two days and
nights in great pain, when he died, as did McCombs,
on the ninth day, mortification then taking place.'
" While these depredations were going on, most of
the Northwestern tribes were ostensibly at peace with
the country, treaties having recently been made. But
the Kentuckians, exasperated by the repeated out-
rages, determined to have resort to their favorite ex-
pedient of invading the Indian country. How far
they were justified in holding the tribes responsible
for the actions of these roving plunderers, the reader
must judge for himself. We may remark, however,
that it does not seem distinctly proved that the Indians
engaged in these attacks belonged to any of the tribes
against whom the attack was to be made. But the
backwoodsmen were never very scrupulous in such.
19
290 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
matters. They generally regarded the Indian race as
a unit : an offense committed by one warrior might
be lawfully punished on another. We often, in read-
ing the history of the "West, read of persons who,
having lost relations by Indians of one tribe, made a
practice of killing all whom they met, whether in
peace or war. It is evident, as Marshall says, that
no authority but that of Congress could render an
expedition of this kind lawful. The Governor of
Virginia had given instructions to the commanders
of the counties to take the necessary means for de-
fense ; and the Kentuckians, giving a free interpreta-
tion to these instructions, decided that the expedition
was necessary and resolved to undertake it.
" General Clark was selected to command it, and to
the standard of this favorite officer volunteers eagerly
thronged. A thousand men were collected at the Falls
of the Ohio, from whence the troops marched by land
to St. Vincennes, while the provisions and other sup-
plies were conveyed by water. The troops soon be-
came discouraged. When the provisions reached
Vincennes, after a delay of several days on account
of the low water, it was found that a large proportion
of them were spoiled. In consequence of this, tho |
RETCRN OF INVADING FOECES. 291
men were placed upon short allowance, with which,
of course, they were not well pleased. In the delay
in waiting for the boats, much of the enthusiasm of
the men had evaporated ; and it is said by some that
General Clark dispatched a messenger to the towns,
in advance of the troops, to offer them the choice of
peace or war, which greatly lessened the chances of
the success of the expedition. Though this measure
would be only complying with the requirements of
good faith, it is very doubtful if it was adopted, so
utterly at variance would it be with the usual manner
of conducting these expeditions.
"At any rate, when the army arrived within two
days' march of the Indian towns, no less than three
hundred of the men refused to proceed, nor could all
the appeals of Clark induce them to alter their deter-
mination. They marched off in a body ; and so dis-
couraged were the others by this desertion, and the
unfavorable circumstances in which they were placed,
that a council held the evening after their departure
concluded to relinquish the undertaking."
The whole of the troops returned to Kentucky in
a very disorderly manner. Thus did this expedition,
begun under the most favorable auspices — for the
292 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
commander's reputation was greater than any other
in the West, and the men were the elite of Kentucky
— altogether fail of its object, the men not having
even seen the enemy. Marshall, in accounting for
this unexpected termination, says that Clark was no
longer the man he had been ; that he had injured his
intellect by the use of spirituous liquors. Colonel
Logan had at first accompanied Clark, but he soon
returned to Kentucky to organize another expedition ;
that might, while the attention of the Indians was al-
together engrossed by the advance of Clark, fall upon
some unguarded point. He raised the. requisite num-
ber of troops without difficulty, and by a rapid march
completely surprised one of the Shawanee towns,
which he destroyed, killing several of the warriors,
and bringing away a number of prisoners. In regard
to the results of the measures adopted by the Ken-
tuckians, we quote from Marshall :
"In October of this year, a large number of families
traveling by land to Kentucky, known by the name
of McNitt's company, were surprised in camp, at night,
by a party of Indians, between Big and Little Laurel
River, and totally defeated, with the loss of twenty-one
persons killed ; the rest dispersed, or taken prisoners.
Hargrove's defeat. 293
"About the same time, Captain Hardin, from the
south-western part of the district, with a party of men,
made an excursion into the Indian country, surround-
ing the Saline; he fell in with a camp of Indians,
whom he attacked and defeated, killing four of them,
without loss on his part.
" Some time in December, Hargrove and others were
defeated at the mouth of Buck Creek, on the Cumber-
land River. The Indians attacked in the night, killed
one man, and wounded Hargrove ; who directly be-
came engaged in a rencontre with an Indian, armed
with his tomahawk; of this he was disarmed, but es-
caped, leaving the weapon with Hargrove, who bore
it off, glad to extricate himself. In this year also,
Benjamin Price was killed near the three forks of
Kentucky.
" Thus ended, in a full renewal of the war, the year
whose beginning had happily witnessed the comple-
tion of the treaties of peace.
" By this time, one thing must have been obvious to
those who had attended to the course of events — and
that was, that if the Indians came into the country,
whether for peace or war, hostilities were inevitable.
4 If the white people, went into their country, tne
294 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
same consequences followed. The parties were yet
highly exasperated against each other ; they had not
cooled since the peace, if peace it could be called ; and
meet where they would, bloodshed was the result.
" Whether the Indians to the north and west had as-
certained, or not, that the two expeditions of this year
were with or without the consent of Congress, they
could but think the treaties vain things ; and either
made by those who had no right to make them, or no
power to enforce them. With Kentuckians, it was
known that the latter was the fact. To the Indians,
the consequence was the same. They knew to a cer-
tainty, that the British had not surrendered the posts
on the lakes — that it was from them they received
their supplies ; that they had been deceived, as to the
United States getting the posts, and they were easily
persuaded to believe, that these posts would not be
transferred; and that in truth, the British, not the
United States, had been the conquerors in the late
war.
" Such were the reflections which the state of facts
would have justified, and at the same time have dis-
posed them for war. The invasion of their country
by two powerful armies from Kentucky, could leave
INCIDENT IN BOURBON COUNTY. 295
no doubt of a disposition equally hostile on her part.
Congress, utterly destitute of the means for enforcing
the treaties, either on the one side or the other, stood
aloof, ruminating on the inexhaustible abundance of
her own want of resources — and the abuse of herself
for not possessing them."
After this year, we hear of but few independent ex-
peditions from Kentucky. Their militia were often
called out to operate with the United States troops,
and in Wayne's campaign were of much service ; but
this belongs to the general history of the United States.
All that we have to relate of Kentucky now, is a series
of predatory attacks by the Indians, varied occasion-
ally by a spirited reprisal by a small party of whites.
It is estimated that fifteen hundred persons were
either killed or made prisoners in Kentucky after the
year 1783.
"On the night of the 11th of April, 1787," says
McClung, " the house of a widow, in Bourbon County,
became the scene of an adventure which we think
deserves to be related. She occupied what is gener-
ally called a double cabin, in a lonely part of the
country, one room of which was tenanted by the old
lady herself, together with two grown sons, and a
29G LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
widowed daughter, at that time suckling an infant,
while the other was occupied by two unmarried
daughters, from sixteen to twenty years of age,
together with a little girl not more than half grown.
The hour was eleven o'clock at night. One of the
unmarried daughters was still busily engaged at the
loom, but the other members of the family, with the
exception of one of the sons, had retired to rest.
Some symptoms of an alarming nature had engaged
the attention of the young man for an hour before
any thing of a decided character took place.
" The cry of owls was heard in the adjoining wood,
answering each other in rather an unusual manner.
The horses, which were enclosed as usual in a pound
near the house, were more than commonly excited,
and by repeated snorting and galloping, announced
the presence of some object of terror. The young
man was often upon the point of awakening his
brother, but was as often restrained by the fear of
incurring ridicule and the reproach of timidity, at
that time an unpardonable blemish in the character
of a Kentuckian. At length hasty steps were heard
in the yard, and quickly afterward, several loud
knocks at the door, -accompanied by the usual excla-
INCIDENT IN BOtKBON COUNTY. 297
mation, 'Who keeps house?' in very good English.
The young man, supposing from the language that
some benighted settlers were at the door, hastily
arose, and was advancing to withdraw the bar which
secured it, when his mother, who had long lived upon
the frontiers, and had probably detected the Indian
tone in the demand for admission, instantly sprung
out of bed, and ordered her son not to admit them,
declaring that they were Indians.
'"She instantly awakened her other son, and the
two young men seized their guns, which were always
charged, prepared to repel the enemy. The Indians,
finding it impossible to enter under their assumed
characters, began to thunder at the door with great
violence, but a single shot from a loop-hole compelled
them to shift the attack to some less exposed point ;
and, unfortunately, they discovered the door of the
other cabin, containing the three daughters. The
rifles of the brothers could not be brought to bear
upon this point, and by means of several rails taken
from the yard fence, the door was forced from its
hinges, and the three girls were at the mercy of the
Savages. One was instantly secured, but the eldest
defended herself desperately with a knife which she
£98 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
had been using at the loom, and stabbed one of the
Indians to the heart before she was tomahawked.
"In the mean time the little girl, who had been
overlooked by the enemy in their eagerness to secure
the others, ran out into the yard, and might have
effected her escape, had she taken advantage of the
darkness and fled; but instead of that, the terrified
little creature ran around the house wringing her
hands, and crying out that her sisters were killed.
The brothers, unable to hear her cries without risking
every thing for her rescue, rushed to the door and were
preparing to sally out to her assistance, when their
mother threw herself before them and calmly declared
that the child must be abandoned to its fate ; that the
sally would sacrifice the lives of all the rest, without
the slightest benefit to the little girl. Just then the
child uttered a loud scream, followed by a few faint
moans, and all was again silent. Presently the crack-
ling of flames was heard, accompanied by a triumph-
ant yell from the Indians, announcing that they had
set fire to that division of the house which had been
occupied by the daughters, and of which they held
undisputed possession.
" The fire was quickly communicated to the rest of
TERRIBLE MASSACRE. 299
the building, and it became necessary to abandon it
01 perish in the flames. In the one case there was a
possibility that some might escape ; in the other, their
fate would be equally certain and terrible. The
rapid approach of the flames cut short their moment-
ary suspense. The door was thrown open, and the
old lady, supported by her eldest son, attempted to
cross the fence at one point, while her daughter,
carrying her child in her arms, and attended by the
younger of the brothers, ran in a different direction.
The blazing roof shed a light over the yard but little
inferior to that of day, and the savages were distinctly
seen awaiting the approach of their victims. The old
lady was permitted to reach the stile unmolested, but
in the act of crossing received several balls in her
breast and fell dead. Her son, providentially, re
mained unhurt, and by extraordinary agility effected
his escape.
" The other party succeeded also in reaching the
fence unhurt, but in the act of crossing, were vigor-
ously assailed by several Indians, who, throwing
down their guns, rushed upon them with their toma-
hawks. The young man defended his sister gallantly,
firing upon the enemy as they approached, and then
300 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
wielding the butt of his rifle with a fury that drew
their whole attention upon himself, and gave his
sister an opportunity of effecting her escape. He
quickly fell, however, under the tomahawks of his
enemies, and was found at daylight, scalped and
mangled in a shocking manner. Of the whole family
consisting of eight persons, when the attack com-
menced, only three escaped. Four were killed upon
the spot, and one (the second daughter) carried off as
a prisoner.
"The neighborhood was quickly alarmed, and by
daylight about thirty men were assembled under the
command of Colonel Edwards. A light snow had
fallen during the latter part of the night, and the
Indian trail could be pursued at a gallop. It led
directly into the mountainous country bordering upon
Licking, and afforded evidences of great hurry and
precipitation on the part of the fugitives. Unfortu-
nately a hound had been permitted to accompany the
whites, and as the trail became fresh and the scent
warm, she followed it with eagerness, baying loudly
and giving the alarm to the Indians. The consequen-
ces of this imprudence were soon displayed. The
enemy finding the pursuit keen, and perceiving that
UNSUCCESSFUL ARTIFICE. 301
the strength of the prisoner began to fail, instantly sunk
their tomahawks in her head and left her, still warm
and bleeding, upon the snow.
As the whites came up, she retained strength enough
to waive her hand in token of recognition, and ap-
peared desirous of giving them some information, with
regard to the enemy, but her strength was too far
gone. Her brother sprung from his horse and knelt
by her side, endeavoring to stop the effusion of blood,
but in vain. She gave him her hand, muttered
some inarticulate words, and expired within two min-
utes after the arrival of the party. The pursuit was
renewed with additional ardor, and in twenty min-
utes the enemy was within view. They had taken
possession of a steep narrow ridge and seemed desirous
of magnifying their numbers in the eyes of the whites,
as they ran rapidly from tree to tree, and maintained
a steady yell in their most appalling tones. The pur-
suers, however, were too experienced to be deceived
by so common an artifice, and being satisfied that the
number of the enemy must be inferior to their own,
they dismounted, tied their horses, and flanking out
in such a manner as to enclose the enemy, ascended
302 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the ridge as rapidly as was consistent with a due re-
gard to the shelter of their persons
The firing quickly commenced, and now for the first
time they discovered that only two Indians were op-
posed to them. They had voluntarily sacrificed them-
selves for the safety of the main body, and succeeded
in delaying pursuit until their friends could reach the
mountains. One of them was instantly shot dead, and
the other was badly wounded, as was evident from the
blood upon his blanket, as well as that which filled
his tracks in the snow for a considerable distance.
The pursuit was recommenced, and urged keenly until
night, when the trail entered a running stream and
was lost. On the following morning the snow had
melted, and every trace of the enemy was obliterated.
This affair must be regarded as highly honorable to
the skill, address, and activity of the Indians ; and the
self-devotion of the rear guard, is a lively instance of
that magnanimity of which they are at times capable,
and which is more remarkable in them, from the ex
treme caution, and tender regard for their own lives,
which usually distinguished their warriors.
From this time Simon Kenton's name became very
prominent as a leader. This year, at the head of
INDIAN RAIDS. 303
forty-six men, he pursued a body of Indians, but did
not succeed in overtaking them, which he afterward
regarded as a fortunate circumstance, as he ascertained
that they were at least double the number of his own
party. A man by the name of Scott, having been
carried off by the Indians, Kenton followed them over
the Ohio, and released him.
As early as January, 1783, the Indians entered
Kentucky, two of them were captured near Crab Or-
chard by Captain Whitley. The same month, a party
stole a number of horses from the Elkhorn settlements ;
they were pursued and surprised in their camp. Their
leader extricated his band, by a singular stratagem.
Springing up before the whites could fire, he went
through a series of the most extraordinary antics, leap-
ing and yelling as if frantic. This conduct absorbing
the attention of the whites, his followers took ad-
vantage of the opportunity to escape. As soon as
they had all disappeared, the wily chief plunged into
the woods and was seen no more. The attacks were
continued in March. Several parties and families suf-
fered severely. Lieutenant McClure, following the
trail of a maurauding party of Indians, fell in with an-
304 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
other body, and in the skirmish that ensued, was mor-
tally wounded.
In 1789, a conference was held at the mouth of the
Muskingum, with most of the northwestern tribes,
the result of which was the conclusion of another
treaty. The Shawanese were not included in this
pacification. This tribe was the most constant in its
enmity to the whites, of all the Western Indians.
There was but little use in making peace with the In-
dians unless all were included ; for as long as one tribe
was at war, restless spirits among the others were found
to take part with them, and the whites, on the other
hand, were not particular to distinguish between hostile
and friendly Indians.
Though the depredations continued this year, no af-
fair of unusual interest occurred ; small parties of the
Indians infested the settlements, murdering and plun-
dering the inhabitants. They were generally pursued,
but mostly without success. Major McMillan was at-
tacked by six or seven Indians, but escaped unhurt
after killing two of his assailants.
A boat upon the Ohio was fired upon, five men killed,
and a woman made prisoner. In their attacks upon
boats, the Indians employed the stratagem of which
INDIAN OUTRAGES CONTINUED. 805
the whites had been warned by Girty. White men
would appear upon the shore, begging the crew to res-
cue them from the Indians, who were pursuing them.
Some of these were renegades, and others prisoners
compelled to act this part, under threats of death in
its most dreadful form if they refused.
The warning of Girty is supposed to have saved
-nany persons from this artifice ; but too often unable
to resist the many appeals, emigrants became victims
to the finest feelings of our nature.
Thus in March, 1790, a boat descending the river
was decoyed ashore, and no sooner had it reached the
bank than it was captured by fifty Indians, who killed
a man and a woman, and made the rest prisoners.
An expedition was made against the Indians on the
Sciota by General Harmer, of the United States army,
and General Scott, of the Kentucky militia, but noth-
ing of consequence was achieved. In May a number
of people returning from Divine service, on Bear Grass
Creek, were attacked, and one man killed, and a
woman made prisoner, who was afterward tomahawked.
Three days after, a boat containing six men and sev-
eral families was captured by sixteen Indians without
loss. The whites were all carried off by the Indians,
20
806 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
who intended, it is said, to make them slaves; one of
the men escaped and brought the news to the settle-
ments.
In the fall Harmer made a second expedition,
which was attended with great disasters. Several
marauding attacks of the Indians ensued; nor was
peace finally restored until after the treaty of Green-
ville, which followed the subjugation of the Indiana
by General Wayne in 1794.
CHAPTER XXI.
Colonel Boone meets with the loss of all his land in Kentucky,
and emigrates to Virginia — Resides on the Kenhawas, near
Point Pleasant — Hears of the fertility of Missouri, and the
abundance of game there — Emigrates to Missouri — Is ap-
pointed commandant of a district under the Spanish Govern-
ment— Mr. Audubon's narrative of a night passed with
Boone, and the narratives made by him during the night —
Extraordinary power of his memory.
A period of severe adversity for Colonel Boone
now ensued. His aversion to legal technicalities and
his ignorance of legal forms were partly the cause of
defects in the titles to the lands which he had long ago
acquired, improved, and nobly defended. But the
whole system of land titles in Kentucky at that early
period was so utterly defective, that hundreds of others
who were better informed and more careful than the
old pioneer, lost their lands by litigation and the arts
and rogueries of land speculators, who made it their
ousiness to hunt up defects in land titles.
The Colonel lost all his land — even his beautiful
(307)
308 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
farm Dear Boonesborough, which ought to have been
held sacred by any men possessed of a particle of
patriotism or honest feeling, was taken from him. He
consequently left Kentucky and settled on the Ken-
hawa River in Virginia, not far from Point Pleasant.
This removal appears to have taken place in the 3'ear
1790. He remained in this place several years, culti-
vating a farm, raising stock, and at the proper seasons
indulging in his favorite sport of hunting.
Some hunters who had been pursuing their sport
on the western shores of the Missouri River gave Col-
onel Boone a very vivid description of that country,
expatiating on the fertility of the land, the abundance
of game, and the great herds of buffalo ranging over
the vast expanse of the prairies. They also described
the simple manners of the people, the absence of law-
yers and lawsuits, and the Arcadian happiness which
was enjoyed by all in the distant region, in such glow-
ing terms that Boone resolved to emigrate and settle
there, leaving his fourth *son Jesse in the Kenhawa
valley, where he had married and settled, and who did
not follow him till several years after.*
Mr. Peck fixes the period of this emigration in 1795.
* Peck.
RECEIVES A SPANISH COMMISSION. 309
Perkins, in his " Western Annals," places it in 1797.
His authority is an article of Thomas J. Hincle in the
" American Pioneer," who says : " I was neighbor to
Daniel Boone, the first white man that fortified against
the Indians in Kentucky. In October, 1797, I saw
him on pack-horses take up his journey for Missouri,
then Upper Louisiana."
Mr. Peck says:* "At that period, and for several
years after, the country of his retreat belonged to the
Crown of Spain. His fame had reached this remote
region before him; and he received of the Lieutenant-
Governor, who resided at St. Louis, ' assurance that
ample portions of land should be given to him and
his famity.' His first residence was in the Femme
Osage settlement, in the District of St. Charles, about
forty-five miles west of St. Louis. Here he remained
with his son Daniel M. Boone until 1804, when he
removed to the residence of his youngest son, Nathan
Boone, with whom he continued till about 1810, when
he went to reside with his son-in-law, Flanders Calla-
way. A commission from Don Charles D. Delassus,
Lieutenant-Governor, dated July 11th, 1800, appoint-
ing him commandant of the Femme Osage District,
* Life of Boone.
310 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
was tendered and accepted. He retained this com-
mand, which included both civil and military duties ;
and he continued to discharge them with credit to
himself, and to the satisfaction of all concerned, until
the transfer of the government to the United States.
The simple manners of the frontier people of Missouri
exactly suited the peculiar habits and temper of
Colonel Boone."
It was during his residence in Missouri that Colonel
Boone was visited by the great naturalist, J. J. Audu-
bon, who passed a night with him. In his Ornitho-
logical Biography, Mr. Audubon gives the following
narrative of what passed on that occasion :
" Daniel Boone, or, as he was usually called in the
Western country, Colonel Boone, happened to spend
a night with me under the same roof, more than
tweniy years ago * We had returned from a shooting
excursion, in the course of which his extraordinary
skill in the management of the rifle had been fully
displayed. On retiring to the room appropriated to
that remarkable individual and myself for the night, 1
felt anxious to know more of his exploits and adven-
tures than I did, and accordingly took the liberty of
* This would be about the year 1810.
A NIGHT WITH AUDUBON. 811
proposing numerous questions to him. The stature
and general appearance of this wanderer of the "West-
ern forests approached the gigantic. His chest was
broad and prominent ; his muscular powers displayed
themselves in every limb ; his countenance gave indi-
cation of his great courage, enterprise, and persever-
ance ; and when he spoke, the very motion of his lips
brought the impression that whatever he uttered could
not be otherwise than strictly true. I undressed,
whilst he merely took off his hunting-shirt, and ar-
ranged a few folds of blankets on the floor, choosing
rather to lie there, as he observed, than on the softest
bed. When we had both disposed of ourselves, each
after his own fashion, he related to me the following
account of his powers of memory, which I lay before
you, kind reader, in his own words, hoping that the
simplicity of his style may prove interesting to you:
" 'I was once,' said he, 'on a hunting expedition
on the banks of the Green Eiver, when the lower
parts of this State (Kentucky) were still in the hands
of Nature, and none but the sons of the soil were
looked upon as its lawful proprietors. We Virginians
had for some time been waging a war of intrusion
upon them, and I, amongst the rest, rambled through
312 LIFE OP COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
the woods in pursuit of their race, as 1 now woul'd
follow the tracks of any ravenous animal. The In-
dians outwitted me one dark night, and I was as un-
expectedly as suddenly made a prisoner by them.
The trick had been managed with great skill ; for no
sooner had I extinguished the fire of my camp, and
laid me down to rest, in full security, as I thought,
than I felt myself seized by an indistinguishable num-
ber of hands, and was immediately pinioned, as if
about to be led to the scaffold for execution. To have
attempted to be refractory would have proved useless
and dangerous to my life ; and I suffered myself to be
removed from my camp to theirs, a few miles distant,
without uttering even a word of complaint. You are
aware, I dare say, that to act in this manner was the
best policy, as you understand that by so doing I
proved to the Indians at once that I was born and
bred as fearless of death as any of themselves.
" ' When we reached the camp, great rejoicings
were exhibited. Two squaws and a few papooses ap-
peared particularly delighted at the sight of me, and I
was assured, by very unequivocal gestures and words,
that, on the morrow, the mortal enemy of the Red-
skins would cease to live. I never opened my lips,
NARRATIVE TO AUDUBON. 313
but was busy contriving some scheme which might
enable me to give the rascals the slip before dawn.
The women immediately fell a searching about my
hunting-shirt for whatever they might think valuable,
and, fortunately for me, soon found my flask filled
with Monongahela (that is, reader, strong whisky). A
terrific grin was exhibited on their murderous counte-
nances, while my heart throbbed with joy at the an-
ticipation of their intoxication. The crew immedi-
ately began to beat their bellies and sing, as they
passed the bottle from mouth to mouth. How often
did I wish the flask ten times its size, and filled with
aquafortis ! I observed that the squaws drank more
freely than the warriors, and again my spirits were
about to be depressed, when the report of a gun was
heard at a distance. The Indians all jumped on their
feet. The singing and drinking were both brought
to a stand, and I saw, with inexpressible joy, the men
walk off to some distance and talk to the squaws. I
knew that they were consulting about me, and I fore-
saw that in a few moments the warriors would go to
discover the cause of the gun having been fired so
near their camp. I expected that the squaws would
be left to guard me. "Well, sir, it was just so. They
314 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
returned ; the men took up their guns, and walked
away. The squaws sat down again, and in less than
five minutes had my bottle up to their dirty mouths,
gurgling down their throats the remains of the whisky.
" ' With what pleasure did I see them becoming
more and more drunk, until the liquor took such hold
of them that it was quite impossible for these women
to be of any service. They tumbled down, rolled
about, and began to snore ; when I, having no other
chance of freeing myself from the cords that fastened
me, rolled over and over toward the fire, and, after a
short time, burned them asunder. I rose on my feet,
stretched my stiffened sinews, snatched up my rifle,
and, for once in my life spared that of Indians. I
now recollect how desirous I once or twice felt to lay
open the skulls of the wretches with my tomahawk ;
but when I again thought upon killing beings unpre-
pared and unable to defend themselves, it looked like
murder without need, and I gave up the idea.
" 'But, sir, I felt determined to mark the spot, and
walking to a thrifty ash sapling I cut out of it three
large chips, and ran off. I soon reached the river,
soon crossed it, and threw myself deep into the cane-
brakes, imitating the tracks of an Indian with my feet,
NARRATIVE TO AUDUBON. 315
so that no chance might bo left for those from whom
Z had escaped to overtake me.
" 'It is now nearly twenty years since this hap-
pened, and more than five since I left the whites' set-
tlements, which I might probably never have visited
again had I not been called on as a witness in a law-
suit that was pending in Kentucky, and which I really
believe would never have been settled had I not come
forward and established the beginning of a certain
boundary line. This is the story, sir :
" ' Mr. — moved from Old Virginia into Ken-
tucky, and having a large tract granted to him in the
new State, laid claim to a certain parcel of land ad-
joining Green Eiver, and, as chance would have it,
took for one of his corners the very ash tree on which
I had made my mark, and finished his survey of some
thousands of acres, beginning, as it is expressed in
the deed, " at an ash marked by three distinct notches
of the tomahawk of a white man."
" ' The tree had grown much, and the bark had
covered the marks ; but, somehow or other, Mr.
heard from some one all that I have already said to
you, and thinking that I might remember the spot
alluded to in the deed, but which was no longer dis-
316 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
coverable, wrote for me to come and try at least to
find the place or the tree. His letter mentioned that
all mj expenses should be paid, and not caring much
about once more going back to Kentucky I started
and met Mr. . After some conversation, the af-
fair with the Indian:1 came to my recollection. I con-
sidered for a while, and began to think that after all I
could find the very spot, as well as the tree, if it was
yet standing.
" ' Mr. and I mounted our horses, and off we
went to the Green Kiver Bottoms. After some diffi-
culties— for you must be aware, sir, that great changes
have taken place in those woods — I found at last the
spot where I had crossed the river, and, waiting for the
moou to rise, made for the course in which I thought the
ash tree grew. On approaching the place, I felt as if
the Indians were there still, and as if I was still a
prisoner among them. Mr. and I camped near
what I conceived the spot, and waited until the return
of day.
" ' At the rising of the sun I was on foot, and, after
a good deal of musing, thought that an ash tree then
in sight must be the very one on which I had made
my mark. I felt as if there could be no doubt of it,
REMARKABLE POWER OF MEMORY. 317
and mentioned my thought to Mr. . ' "Well, Col-
onel Boone/ said he, ' if you think so, I hope it may-
prove true, but we must have some witnesses ; do you
stay here about, and I will go and bring some of the
settlers whom I know.' I agreed. Mr. trotted
off, and I, to pass the time, rambled about to see if a
deer was still living in the land. But ah ! sir, what a
wonderful difference thirty years make in the country !
Why, at the time when I was caught by the Indians,
you would not have walked out in any direction for
more than a mile without shooting a buck or a bear.
There were then thousands of buffaloes on the hills
in Kentucky ; the land looked as if it never would
become poor ; and to hunt in those days was a pleasure
indeed. But when I was left to myself on the banks
of Green Eiver, I dare say for the last time in my life,
a few signs only of deer were to be seen, and, as to a
deer itself, I saw none.
" ' Mr. returned, accompanied by three gen-
tlemen. They looked upon me as if I had been
Washington himself, and walked to the ash tree,
which I now called my own, as if in quest of a long-
lost treasure. I took an axe from one of them, and
cut a few chips off the bark. Still no signs were to
818 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
be seen. So I cut again until I thought it was time
to be cautious, and I scraped and worked away with
ray butcher-knife until I did come to where my toma-
hawk had left an impression in the wood. We now
went regularly to work, and scraped at the tree with
care until three hacks, as plain as any three notches
ever were, could be seen. Mr. and the other
gentlemen were astonished, and I must allow I was
as much surprised as pleased myself. I made affidavit
of this remarkable occurrence in presence of these
gentlemen. Mr. gained his cause. I left Greeo
River forever, and came to where we now are ; and
sir, I wish you a good-night.' "
CHAPTER XXII.
Colonel Boone receives a large grant of land from the Spanish
Government of Upper Louisiana — He subsequently loses it
by neglecting to secure the formal title — His law suits in his
new home — Character of the people — Sketch of the history
of Missouri — Colonel Boone's hunting — He pays his debts by
the sale of furs — Hunting excursions continued — In danger
from the Indians — Taken sick in his hunting camp — His rela-
tives settled in his neighborhood — Colonel Boone applies to
Congress to recover his land — The Legislature of Kentucky
supports his claim — Death of Mrs. Boone — Results of the ap-
plication to Congress — He receives one-eleventh part of his
just claim — He ceases to hunt — Occupations of his declining
years — Mr. Harding paints his portrait.
In consideration of his official services as Syndic,
ten thousand arpents* of excellent land were given
to Colonel Boone by the Government. Under the
special law, in order to make his title good, he should
have obtained a confirmation of his grant from the
immediate representative of the Crown, then residing
in New Orleans. But his friend, the Commandant at
* An arpent of land is eighty-five-hundredths of an acre.
(319)
320 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
St. Louis, undertook to dispense with his residence on
the land which was another condition to a sound title,
and Boone probably supposed that "all would be
right" without attending to any of the formalities,
and neglected to take the necessary steps for holding
his land securely.
It is probable that he foresaw tuat Missouri would
soon become a part of the United States, and expected
justice from that quarter. But in this he was disap-
pointed, for when that event took place, the comission-
ers of the United States appointed to decide on con-
firmed clains felt constrained by their instructions aud
rejected Colonel Boone's claims for want of legal for-
malities.
Thus was the noble pioneer a second time deprived
of the recompense of his inestimable services by his
inattention to the precautions nesessary for securing
his rights. This second misfortune came upon him
some time after the period of which we are now writing.
Meantime Colonel Boone found his residence in
Missouri agreeable, and in every respect congenial to
his habits and tastes. His duties as Syndic were light ;
and he was allowed ample time for the cultivation of
his land, and for occasional tours of hunting, in whict
HISTORY OF MISSOURI. 821
he so greatly delighted. Trapping beaver was another
of his favorite pursuits, and in this new country ho
found abundance of this as well as other species of
game.
A greater part of the people of Missouri were emi-
grants from the United States, pioneers of the West,
who had already resisted Indian aggressions, and
were welcomed by the French and Spanish settlers as
a clear accession to their military strength.
A brief notice of the history of this State, showing
how the different kinds of population came there, will
be not inappropriate in this place;
Though the French were the first settlers, and for
a long time the principal inhabitants of Missouri, yet a
very small portion of her present population is of that
descent. A fort was built by that people as early as
1719, near the site of the present capital, called Fort
Orleans, and its lead mines worked to some extent the
next year. St. Genevieve, the oldest town in the State,
was settled in 1755, and St. Louis in 1764. At the
treaty of 1763 it was assigned, with all the territory
west of the Mississippi, to Spain. " In 1780, St. Louis
was besieged and attacked by a body of British troops
and Indians, fifteen hundred and forty strong." Bur-
21
322 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
ing the siege, sixty of the French were killed. The
siege was raised by Colonel George Eogers Ciark, who
came with five hundred men to the relief of the place.
At the close of the American Eevolution, the territory
west of the Mississippi remained with Spain till it was
ceded to France, in 1801. In 1803, at the purchase of
Louisiana, it came into the possession of the United
States, and formed part of the territory of Louisiana,
until the formation of the State of that name in 1812,
when the remainder of the territory was named Mis-
souri, from which (after a stormy debate in Congress
as to the admission of slavery) was separated the pres-
ent State of Missouri in 1721*
The office of Syndic, to which Colonel Boone had
been appointed, is similar to that of justice of the peace
under our own government: but it is more extensive,
as combining military with civil powers. Its exercise
in Colonel Boone's district did not by any means oc-
cupy the whole of his time and attention. On the
contrary, he found sufficient time for hunting in the
winter months — the regular hunting season. At first
he was not very successful in obtaining valuable furs ;
but after two or three seasons, he was able to secure a
* Lippincott's Gazetteer.
PEBILS WHILE HUNTING. 323
sufficient quantity to enable him, by the proceeds of
their sale, to discharge some outstanding debts in Ken-
tucky ; and he made a journey thither for that purpose.
When ho had seen each creditor, and paid him all he
demanded, he returned home to Missouri, and on his
arrival he had but half a dollar remaining. " To his
family," says Mr. Peck, " and a circle of friends who
had called to see him, he said, ' Now I am ready and
willing to die. I am relieved from a burden that has
long oppressed me. I have paid all my debts, and no
one will say, when I am gone, ' Boone was a dishonest
man.' I am perfectly willing to die."*
Boone still continued his hunting excursions, at-
tended sometimes by some friend: but most frequently
by a black servant boy. On one of these occasions
these two had to resist an attack of Osage Indians,
whom they speedily put to flight. At another time,
when he was entirely alone, a large encampment of
Indians made its appearance in his neighborhood; and
he was compelled to secrete himself for twenty days in
his camp, cooking his food only in the middle of the
* The owners of the money of which he was rohbed on his
journey to Virginia, as already related, had voluntarily relin-
quished all claims on him. This was a single act of justice.
824 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
night, so that the smoke of his fire would not be seen.
At the end of this long period of inaction the Indians
went oft'.
At another time, while in his hunting camp, with
only a negro boy for his attendant, he fell sick and lay
a long time unable to go out. When sufficiently re-
covered to walk out, he pointed out to the boy a place
where he wished to be buried if he should die in camp,
and also gave the boy very exact directions about his
burial, and the disposal of his rifle, blankets and
peltry.*
Among the relations of Colonel Boone, who were
settled in his neighborhood, were Daniel Morgan Boone,
his eldest son then living, who had gone out before
his father: Kattra, with his wife, who had followed
in 1800 ; and Flanders Callaway, his son-in-law, who
had come out about the time that Missouri, then Upper
Louisiana, became a part of the United States ter-
ritory.f
"We have already stated that the land granted to
Colonel Boone, in consideration of his performing the
duties of Syndic, was lost by his omission to comply
with the legal formalities necessary to secure his title.
* Peck. f lUd.
PETITION TO CONGEESS. 325
In addition to the ten thousand arpents of land thus
lost, he had been entitled as a citizen to one thousand
arpents of land according to the usage in other cases ;
but he appears not to have complied with the condition
of actual residence on this land, and it was lost in cm-
sequence.
In 1812, Colonel Boone sent a petition to Congress,
praying for a confirmation of his original claims. In
order to give greater weight to his application, he pre-
sented a memorial to the General Assembly of Ken-
tucky, on the thirteenth of January, 1812, soliciting
the aid of that body in obtaining from Congress the
confirmation of his claims.
The Legislature, by a unanimous vote, passed the
following preamble and resolutions .
" The Legislature of Kentucky, taking into view the
many eminent services rendered by Col. Boone, in ex
ploring and settling the western country, from which
great advantages have resulted, not only to this State,
but to his country in general ; and that from circumstan-
ces over which he had no control, he is now reduced
\o poverty, not having, so far as appears, an acre of
land out of the vast territory he has been a great in-
strument in peopling ; believing, also, that it is as un-
326 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
just as it is impolitic, that useful enterprise and emi-
nent services should go unrewarded by a government
where merit confers the only distinction ; and having
sufficient reason to believe that a grant of ten thousand
acres of land, which he claims in Upper Louisiana,
would have been confirmed by the Spanish govern-
ment, had not said territory passed, by cession, into
the hands of the general government : wherefore.
"Kesolved, by the General Assembly of the Com-
monwealth of Kentucky, — That our Senators in Con-
gress be requested to make use of their exertions to
procure a grant of land in said territory to said Boone,
either the ten thousand acres to which he appears to
have an equitable claim, from the grounds set forth to
this Legislature, by way of confirmation, or to such
quantity in such place as shall be deemed most advis-
able, by way of donation."
Notwithstanding this action of the Legislature of
Kentucky, Colonel Boone's appeal, like many other
just and reasonable clains presented to Congress, was
neglected for some time. During this period of anx-
ious suspense, Mrs. Boone, the faithful and affectionate
wife of the venerable pioneer, who had shared his toils
and anxieties, and cheered his home for so many years,
GRANT OF LAND BY CONGRESS. 327
was taken from his side. She died in March, 1813, at
the age of seventy-six. The venerable pioneer was
now to miss her cheerful companionship for the re-
mainder of his life ; and to a man of his affectionate
disposition this must have been a severe privation.
Colonel Boone's memorial to Congress received the
earnest and active support of Judge Coburn, Joseph
Vance, Judge Burnett, and other distinguished men
belonging to the Western country. But it was not
till the 24th of December, 1813, that the Committee
on Public Lands made a report on the subject.
The report certainly is a very inconsistent one, as
it fully admits the. justice of his claim to eleven thou-
sand arpents of land, and recommends Congress to
give him the miserable pittance of one thousand ar-
pents, to which he was entitled in common with all the
other emigrants to Upper Louisiana ! The act for the
confirmation of the title passed on the 10th of Feb-
ruary, 1814.
For ten years before his decease, Colonel Boone
gave up his favorite pursuit of hunting. The infirmi-
ties of age rendered it imprudent for him to venture
alone in the woods.
The closing years of Colonel Boone's life were
328 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
passed in a manner entirely characteristic of the man.
He appears to have considered love to mankind, rev-
erence to the Supreme Being, delight in his works
and constant usefulness, as the legitimate ends of life
After the decease of Mrs. Boone, he divided his time
among the different members of his family, making
his home with his eldest daughter, Mrs. Callaway,
visiting his other children, and especially his youngest
son, Major Nathan Boone, for longer or shorter periods,
according to his inclination and convenience. He was
greatly beloved by all his descendants, some of whom
were of the fifth generation ; and he took great delight
in their society.
" His time at home," says Mr. Peck, "was usually
occupied in some useful manner. He made powder-
horns for his grandchildren, neighbors, and friends,
many of which were carved and ornamented with
much taste. He repaired rifles, and performed various
descriptions of handicraft with neatness and finish."
Making powder-horns — repairing rifles — employments
in pleasing unison with old pursuits, and by the asso-
ciations thus raised in his mind, always recalling the
pleasures of the chase, the stilly whispering hum of
MR. HARDING PAINTS HIS PORTRAIT. 329
the pines, the fragrance of wild flowers, and the deep
solitude of the primeval forest."
In the summer of 1820, Chester Harding, who of
American artists is one of the most celebrated for the
accuracy of his likenesses, paid a visit to Colonel Boone
for the purpose of taking his portrait. The Colonel
was quite feeble, and had to be supported by a friend,
the Eev. J. E. Welsh, while sitting to the artist*
This portrait is the original from which most of the
engravings of Boone have been executed. It repre-
sents him in his hunting-dress, with his large hunting-
knife in his belt. The face is very thin and pale, and
the hair perfectly white ; the eyes of a bright blue
color, and the expression of the countenance mild
and pleasing.
* Peok. Life of Boone.
CHAPTER XXIII.
Last illness, and death of Colonel Boone — His funeral — Account
of his family — His remains and those of his wife removed
from Missouri, and reii*terred in the new cemetery in Frank-
fort, Kentucky — Character of Colonel Boone.
Lsr September, 1820, Colonel Boone had an attack
of fever, from which he recovered so as to make a
visit to the house of his son, Major Nathan Boone.
Soon after, from an indiscretion in his diet, he had a
relapse ; and after a confinement to the house of only
three days, he expired on the 26th of September, in
the eighty-sixth year of his age.
He was buried in a coffin which he had kept ready
for several years. His- remains were laid by the side
of those of his deceased wife. The great respect and
reverence entertained toward him, attracted a large
concourse from the neighboring country to the funeral.
The Legislature of Missouri, then in session, passed
a resolution that the members should wear the badge
of mourning usual in such cases for twenty days ;
and an adjournment for one day took place.
(330)
REINTERMENT AT FRANKFORT. 331
Colonel Boone had five sons and four daughters
The two oldest sons, as already related, were killed
by the Indians. His third, Colonel Daniel Morgan
Boone, resided in Missouri, and died about 1842,
past the age of eighty. Jesse Boone, the fourth son,
settled in Missouri about 1805, and died at St. Louis
a few years after. Major Nathan Boone, the youngest ,
child, resided for many years in Missouri, and received
a commission in the United States Dragoons. He
was still living at a recent date. Daniel Boone's
daughters, Jemima, Susannah, Eebecca, and Layinia,
were all married, lived and died in Kentucky.
In 1845 the citizens of Frankfort, Kentucky, hav-
ing prepared a rural cemetery, resolved to consecrate
it by interring in it the remains of Daniel Boone and
his wife. The consent of the family being obtained,
the reinterment took place on the 20th of August of
that year.
The pageant was splendid and deeply interesting.
A few survivors of Boone's cotemporaries were
present, gathered from all parts of the State, and a
numerous train of his descendants and relatives led
the van of the procession escorting the hearse, which
was decorated with forest evergreens and white lilies,
332 LIFE OF COLONEL DANIEL BOONE.
an appropriate tribute to the simple as well as glori-
ous character of Boone, and a suitable emblem of his
enduring fame. The address was delivered by Mr.
Crittenden, and the concourse of citizens from Ken-
tucky and the neighboring States was immense.
The reader of the foregoing pages will have no diffi-
culty in forming a correct estimate of Boone's charac-
ter. He was one of the purest and noblest of the
pioneers of the West. Eegarding himself as an in-
strument in the hands of Providence for accomplishing
great purposes, he was nevertheless always modest
and unassuming, never seeking distinction, but always
accepting the post of duty and danger.
As a military leader he was remarkable for pru-
dence, coolness, bravery, and imperturbable self-pos-
session. His knowledge of the character of the In-
dians enabled him to divine their intentions and
baffle their best laid plans; and notwithstanding his re-
sistance of their inroads, he was always a great favorite
amongst them. As a father, husband, and citizen,
his character seems to have been faultless; and his
intercourse with his fellow-men was always marked
by the strictest integrity and honor.
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY.
[The following pages were dictated by Colonel Boone to John Filson, and published
in 1784. Colonel Boone has been heard to say repeatedly since its publication,
that "it is every word true."]
Curiosity is Natural to the soul of man, and interesting ob-
jects have a powerful influence on our affections. Let these
influencing powers actuate, by the permission or disposal of
Providence, from selfish or social views, yet in time the myste-
rious will Of Heaven is unfolded, and we behold our conduct,
from whatsoever motives excited, operating to answer the im-
portant designs of Heaven. Thus we behold Kentucky, lately
a howling wilderness, the habitation of savages and wild beasts,
become a fruitful field ; this region, so favorably distinguished
by nature, now become the habitation of civilization, at a period
unparalleled in history, in the midst of a raging war, and under
all the disadvantages of emigration to a country so remote from
the inhabited parts of the continent. Here, where the hand of
violence shed the blood of the innocent ; where the horrid yells
of savages and the groans of the distressed sounded in our ears,
we now hear the praises and adorations of our Creator ; where
wretched wigwams stood, the miserable abodes of savages, wo
behold the foundations of cities laid, that, in all probability,
will equal the glory of the greatest upon earth. And we view
Kehtucky, situated on the fertile banks of the great Ohio, rising
from obscurity to shine with splendor, equal to any other of the
stars of the American hemisphere.
The settling of this region well deserves a place in history.
Most of the memorable events I have myself been exercised in ;
and, for the satisfaction of the public, will briefly relate the cir-
(333)
834 COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAFHY.
cumstance of my adventures, and scenes of life from my first
movement to this country until this day.
It was on the first of May, in. the year 1760, that I resigned my
domestic happiness for a time, and left my family and peaceahle
habitation on the Yadkin River, in North Carolina, to wander
through the wilderness of America, in quest of the country of
Kentucky, in company with John Finley, John Stewart, Joseph
Holden, James Monay, and William Cool. We proceeded suc-
cessfully, and after a long and fatiguing journey through a
mountainous wilderness, in a westward direction. On the 7th of
June following we found ourselves on Red River, where John
Finley had formerly been trading with the Indians, and, from
the top of an eminence, saw with pleasure the beautiful level
of Kentucky. Here let me observe that for some time we had
experienced the most uncomfortable weather, as a prelibation
of our future sufferings. At this place we encamped, and made
a shelter to defend us from the inclement season, and began to
hunt and reconnoitre the country. We found everywhere
abundance of wild beasts of all sorts, through this vast forest.
The buffalo were more frequent than I have seen cattle in the
settlements, browsing on the leaves of the c«ine, or cropping
the herbage on those extensive plains, fearless, because ignorant
of the violence of man. Sometimes we saw hundreds in a drove,
and the numbers about the salt springs were amazing. In this
forest, the habitation of beasts of every kiud natural to America,
we practiced hunting with great success until the 22d day op
December following.
This day John Steward and I had a pleasing ramble, but foi-
tune changed the scene in the close of it. We had passed
through a great forest, on which stood myriads of trees, some
gay with blossoms, and others rich with fruits. Nature was
here a series of wonders, and a fund of delight. Here she dis-
played her ingenuity and industry in a variety of flowers andj
fruits, beautifully colored, elegantly shaped, and charmingly I
flavored ; and we were diverted with innumerable animals pre-
senting themselves perpetually to our view. In the decline of]
the day, near Kentucky River, as we ascended the brow of a smallj
hill, a number of Indians rushed out of a thick canebrake uponj
us, and made us prisoners. The time of our sorrow was now>
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 335
arrived, and the scene fully opened. The Indians plundered us
of what we had, and kept us in confinement seven days, treating
us with common savage usage. During this time we discovered
no uneasiness or desire to escape, which made them less suspi-
cious of us ; but in the dead of night, as we lay in a thick cane-
brake by a large fire, when sleep had locked-up their senses, my
situation not disposing me for rest, I touched my companion,
and gently awoke him. We improved this favorable opportu-
nity and departed, leaving them to take their rest, and speedily
directed our course toward our old camp, but found it plundered,
and the company dispersed and gone home. About this time
my brother, Squire Boone, with another adventurer, who came
to explore the country shortly after us, was wandering through
the forest, determined to find me if possible, and accidentally
found our camp. Notwithstanding the unfortunate circum-
stances of our company, and our dangerous situation, as sur-
rounded with hostile savages, our meeting so fortunately in the
wilderness made us reciprocally sensible of the utmost satisfac-
tion. So much does friendship triumph over misfortune, that
sorrows and sufferings vanish at the meeting not only of real
friends, but of the most distant acquaintances, and substitute
happiness in their room.
Soon after this, my companion in captivity, John Stewart, was
killed by the savages, and the man that came with my brother
returned home by himself. We were then in a dangerous, help-
less situation, exposed daily to perils and death among savages
and wild beasts — not a white man in the country but ourselves.
Thus situated, many hundred miles from our families in the
howling wilderness, I believe few would have equally enjoyed
the happiness we experienced. I often observed to my brother.
" You see now how little nature requires to be satisfied. Felicity,
the companion of content, is rather found in oiir own breasts
than in the enjoyment of external things ; and I firmly believe
it requires but a little philosophy to make a man happy in what-
soever state he is. This consists in a full resignation to the
will of Providence ; and a resigned soul finds pleasure in a path
strewed with briers and thorns."
We continued not in a state of indolence, but hunted every
day, and prepared a little cottage to defend us from the winter
336 COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY.
storms. We remained there undisturbed during the wintei ,
and on the first day of May, 1770, my brother returned home to
the settlement by himself, for a new recruit of horses and am-
munition, leaving me by myself, without bread, salt, or sugar,
without company of my fellow-creatures, or even a horse or
dog. I confess I never before was under greater necessity of
exercising philosophy and fortitude. A few days I passed un-
comfortably. The idea of a beloved wife and family, and their
anxiety upon the account of my absence and exposed situation,
made sensible impressions on my heart. A thousand dreadful
apprehensions presented themselves to my view, and had un-
doubtedly disposed me to melancholy, if further indulged.
One day I undertook a tour through the country, and the
diversity and beauties of nature I met with in this charming
season, expelled every gloomy and vexatious thought. Just at
the close of day the gentle gales retired, and left the place to
the disposal of a profound calm. Not a breeze shook the most
tremulous leaf. I had gained the summit of a commanding
vidge, and, looking round with astonishing delight, beheld the
ample plains, the beauteous tracts below. On the other hand,
I surveyed the famous river Ohio, that rolled in silent dignity,
marking the western boundary of Kentucky with inconceivable
grandeur. At a vast distance I beheld the mountains lift their
venerable brows, and penetrate the clouds. All things were
still. I kindled a fire near a fountain of sweet water, and
feasted on the loin of a buck, which a few hours before I had
killed. The sullen shades of night soon overspread the whole
hemisphere, and the earth seemed to gasp after the hovering
moisture. My roving excursion this day had fatigued my body,
and diverted my imagination. I laid me down to sleep, and I
awoke not until the sun had chased away the night. I contin-
ued this tour, and in a few days explored a considerable part of
the country, each day equally pleased as the first. I returned
again to my old camp, which was not disturbed in my absence.
I did not confine my lodging to it, but often reposed in thick
canebrakes, to avoid the savages, who, I believe, often visited
my camp, but, fortunately for me, in my absence. In this sit-
uation I was constantly exposed to danger and death. How
unhappy such a situation for a man tormented with fear, which
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 337
is vain if no danger comes, and if it does, only augments the
pain 1 It was my happiness to be destitute of this afflicting
passion, with which I had the greatest reason to be affected.
The prowling wolves diverted my nocturnal hours with per-
petual bowlings ; and the various species of animals in this vast
forest, in the daytime, were continually in my view,
Thus I was surrounded by plenty in the midst of want. I
was happy in the midst of dangers and inconveniences. In such
a diversity, it was impossible I should be disposed to melancholy.
No populous city, with all the varieties of commerce and stately
structures, could afford so much pleasure to my mind as the
beauties of nature I found here.
Thus, through an uninterrupted scene of sylvan pleasures, I
spent the time until the 27th day of July following, when my
brother, to my great felicity, met me, according to appointment,
at our old camp. Shortly after, we left this place, not thinking
it safe to stay there longer, and proceeded to Cumberland River,
reconnoitering that part of the country until March, 1771, and
giving names to the different waters.
Soon after, I returned home to my family, with a determina-
tion to bring them as soon as possible to live in Kentucky,
which I esteemed a second paradise, at the risk of my life and
fortune.
I returned safe to my old habitation, and found my family in
happy circumstances. I sold my farm on the Yadkin, and what
goods we could not carry with us ; and on the 25th day of Sep-
tember, 1773, bade a farewell to our friends, and proceeded on
our journey to Kentucky, in company with five families more,
and forty men that joined us in Powel's Valley, which is one
hundred and fifty miles from the now settled parts of Kentucky,
This promising beginning was soon overcast with a cloud of
adversity ; for, upon the 10th day of October,. the rear of our
company was attacked by a number of Indians, who killed six,
and wounded one man. Of these, my eldest son was one that
fell in the action. Though we defended ourselves and repulsed
the enemy, yet this unhappy affair scattered our cattle, brought
us into extreme difficulty, and so discouraged the whole com-
pany, that we retreated forty miles, to the settlement on Clinch
River. We had passed over two mountains, viz., Powel's and
22
338 COLONEL boone's autobiography.
»
Walden's, and were approaching Cumberland mountain when
this adverse fortune overtook us. These mountains are in the
wilderness, as we pass from the old settlements in Virginia to
Kentucky, are ranged in a southwest and northeast direction,
are of a great length and breadth, and not far distant from each
other. Over these, nature hath formed passes that are less diffi-
cult than might be expected, from a view of such huge piles.
The aspect of these cliffs is so wild and horrid, that it is impos-
sible to behold them without terror. The spectator is apt to
imagine that nature has ftrmerly suffered some violent convul-
sion, and that these are the dismembered remains of the dread-
ful shock ; the ruins, not of Persepolis or Palmyra, but of the
world t
I remained with my family on Clinch until the 6th of June,
1774, when I and one Michael Stoner were solicited by Governor
Dunmore of Virginia to go to the falls of the Ohio, to conduct
into the settlements a number of surveyors that had been sent
thither by him some months before ; this country having about
this time drawn the attention of many adventurers. We imme-
diately complied with the Governor's request, and conducted in
the surveyors — completing a tour of eight hundred miles,
through many difficulties, in sixty-two days.
Soon after I returned home, I was ordered to take the command
of three garrisons during the campaign which Governor Dun-
more carried on against the Shawanese Indians ; after the con-
clusion of which, the militia was discharged from each garrison,
and I, being relieved from my post, was solicited by a number
of North Carolina gentlemen, that were about purchasing the
lands lying on the south side of Kentucky River, from the Cher-
okee Indians, to attend their treaty at Wataga, in March, 1775,
to negotiate with them, and mention the boundaries of the
purchase. . This I accepted ; and, at the request of the same
gentlemen, undertook to mark out a road in the best passage
from the settlement through the wilderness to Kentucky, with
such assistance as I thought necessary to employ for such an
important undertaking.
I soon began this work, having oollected a number of enter-
prising men, well armed. "We proceeded with all possible ex-
pedition until we came within fifteen miles of where Boones-
4
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 339
borough now stands, and where we were fired upon by a party
of Indians, that killed two, and wouuded two of our number ;
yet, although surprised and taken at a disadvantage, we stood
our ground. This was on the 20th of March, 1775. Three days
after, we were fired upon again, and had two men killed, and
three wounded. Afterward we proceeded on to Kentucky River
without opposition ; and on the first day of April began to erect
the fort of Boonesborough at a salt lick, about sixty yards from
the river, on the south side.
On the fourth day, the Indians killed one of our men. We
were' busily employed in building this fort until the fourteenth
day of June following, without any further opposition from the
Indians ; and having finished the works, I returned to my family
on Clinch.
In a short time I proceeded to remove my family from Clinch
to this garrison, where we arrived safe, without any other diffi-
culties than such as are common to this passage ; my wife and
daughter being the first white women that ever stood on the
banks of Kentucky River.
Ou the 24th day of December following, we had one man
killed, and one wounded by the Indians, who seemed determined
to persecute us for erecting this fortification.
On the fourteenth day of July, 1776, two of Colonel Calaway's
daughters, and one of mine, were taken prisoners near the fort.
I immediately pursued the Indians with only eight men, and
on the 16th overtook them, killed two of the party, and recov-
ered the girls. The same day on which this attempt was made,
the Indians divided themselves into different parties, and
attacked several forts, which were shortly before this time
erected, doing a great deal of mischief. This was extremely
distressing to the new settlers. The innocent husbandman was
shot down, while busy in cultivating the soil for his family's
supply. Most of the cattle around the stations were destroyed.
They continued their hostilities in this manner until the 15th
of April, 1777, when they attacked Boonesborough with a party
of above one hundred in number, killed one man, and wounded
four. Their loss in this attaok was not oertainly known to us.
Ou the 4th day of July following, a party of about two hun-
dred Indians attacked Boonesborough, killed one man and
340 COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY.
wounded two. They besieged us forty-eight hours, during
which time seven of thern were killed, and, at last, finding
themselves not likely to prevail, they raised the siege and de-
parted.
The Indians had disposed their warriors in different parties at
this time, and attacked the different garrisons, to prevent their
assisting each other, and did much injury to the distressed in-
habitants.
On the 19th day of this month, Colonel Logan's fort was
besieged by a party of about two hundred Indians. During this
dreadful siege they did a great deal of mischief, distressed the
garrison, in which were only fifteen men, killed two, and
wounded one. The enemy's loss was uncertain, from the com-
mon practice which the Indians have of carrying off their dead
in time of battle. Colonel Harrod's fort was then defended by
only sixty-five men, and Boonesborough by twenty-two, there
being no more forts or white men in the country, except at the
Falls, a considerable distance from these ; and all, taken col-
lectively, were but a handful to the numerous warriors that
were everywhere dispersed through the country, intent upon
doing all the mischief that savage barbarity could invent. Thus
we passed through a scene of sufferings that exceeds description.
On the 25th of this month, a reinforcement of forty-five men
arrived from North Carolina, and about the 20th of August fol-
lowing, Colonel Bowman arrived with one hundred men from
Virginia. Now we began to strengthen ; and hence, for the
space of six weeks, we had skirmishes with Indians, in one
quarter or another, almost every day.
The savages now learned the superiority of the Long Knife,
as they call the Virginians, by experienee ; being out-generalled
in almost every battle. Our affairs began to wear a new aspect,
and the enemy, not daring to venture on open war, practiced
secret mischief at times.
On the 1st day of January, 1778, I went with a party of thirty
men to the Blue Licks, on Licking River, to make salt for the
different garrisons in the country.
On the 7th day of February, as I was hunting to procure meat
for the company, I met with a party of one hundred and two
Indians, and two Frenchmen, on their march against Boones-
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 341
borough, that place being particularly the object of the enemy.
They pursued, and took me ; and brought me on the 8th da 7
to the Licks, where twenty-seven of my party were, three cf
them having previously returned home with the salt. I, know-
ing it was impossible for them to escape, capitulated with the
enemy, and, at a distance, in their view, gave notice to my men
of their situation, with orders not to resist, but surrender them-
selves captives.
The generous usage the Indians had promised before in my
capitulation, was afterward fully complied with, and we pro-
ceeded with them as prisoners to Old Chilicothe, the principal
Indian Town on Little Miami, where we arrived, after an uncom-
fortable journey, in very severe weather, on the ISth day of
February, and received as good treatment as prisoners could
expect from savages. On the 10th day of March following, I
and ten of my men were conducted by forty Indians to Detroit,
where we arrived the 30th day, and were treated by Governor
Hamilton, the British commander at that post, with great
humanity.
During our travels, the Indians entertained me well, and their
affection for me was so great, that they utterly refused to leave
me there with the others, although the Governor offered them
one hundred pounds sterling for me, on purpose to give me a
parole to go home. Several English gentlemen there, being sen-
sible of my adverse fortune, and touched with human sympathy,
generously offered a friendly supply for my wants, which I re-
fused, with many thanks for their kindness — adding, that I never
expected it would be in my power to recompense such unmerited
generosity.
The Indians left my men in captivity with the British at
Detroit, and on the 10th day of April brought me toward Old
Chilicothe, where we arrived on the 25th day of the same month..
This was a long and fatiguing march, through an exceedingly
fertile country, remarkable for fine springs and streams of water.
At Chilicothe I spent my time as comfortably as I could expect ;
was adopted, according to their custom, into a family, where I
became a son, and had a great share in the affection of my new
parents, brothers, sisters, and friends. I was exceedingly
familiar and friendly with them, always appearing as cheerful
342 COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY.
and satisfied as possible, and they put great confidence in me.
I often went a hunting with them, and frequently gained their
applause for my activity at our shooting-matches. 'I was care-
ful not to exceed many of them in shooting ; for no people are
more envious than they in this sport. I could observe, in their
countenances and gestures, the greatest expressions of joy when
tiny exceeded me ; and, when the reverse happened, of envy.
The Shawanese king took great notice of me, and treated me
with profound respect and entire friendship, often intrusting me
to hunt at my liberty. I frequently returned with the spoils
of the woods, and as often presented some of what I had taken
to him, expressive of duty to my sovereign. My food and lodg-
ing were in common with them ; not so good, indeed, as I could
desire, but necessity makes every thing acceptable.
I now began to meditate an escape, and carefully avoided
their suspicions, continuing with them at Old Chilicothe until
the 1st day of June following, and then was taken by them to
the salt springs on Scioto, and kept there making salt ten days.
During this time I hunted some for them, and found the land,
for a great extent about this river, to exceed the soil of Ken-
tucky, if possible, and remarkably well watered.
When I returned to Chilicothe, alarmed to see four hundred
and fifty Indians, of their choicest warriors, painted and armed
in a fearful manner, ready to march against Boonesborough, I
determined to escape the first opportunity.
On the 16th, before sunrise, I departed in the most secret
manner, and arrived at Boonesborough on the 20th, after a jour-
ney of one hundred and sixty miles, during which I had but one
meal.
I found our fortress in a bad state of defense ; but we pro-
ceeded immediately to repair our flanks, strengthen our gates
and posterns, and form double bastions, which we completed in
ten days. In this time we daily expected the arrival of the
Indian army ; and at length, one of my fellow-prisoners, escap-
ing from them, arrived, informing us that the enemy had, on
account of my departure, postponed their expedition three
weeks. The Indians hail spies out viewing our movements, and
were greatly alarmed with our increase in number and fortifica-
tions. The grand council of the nations were held frequently,
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 343
and with more deliberation than usual. They evidently saw
the approaching hour when the Long Knife would dispossess
them of their desirable habitations ; and, anxiously concerned
for futurity, determined utterly to extirpate the whites out of
Kentucky. We were not intimidated by their movements, but
frequently gave them proofs of our courage.
About the first of August, I made an incursion into the Indian
country with a party of nineteen men, in order to surprise a
small town up Scioto, called Paint Creek Town. We advanced
within four miles thereof, when we met a party of thirty Indians
on their march against Boonesborough, intending to join the
others from Chilicothe. A smart fight ensued between us for
some time ; at length the savages gave way and fled. We had
no loss on our side ; the enemy had one killed, and two wounded.
We took from them three horses, and all their baggage ; and
being informed by two of our number that went to their town,
that the Indians had entirely evacuated it, we proceeded no
further, and returned with all possible expedition to assist our
garrison against the other party. We passed by them on the
sixth day, and on the seventh we arrived safe at Boonesborough.
On the 8th, the Indian army arrived, being four hundred and
forty-four in number, commanded by Captain Duquesne, eleven
other Frenchmen, and some of their own chiefs, and marched
up within view of our fort, with British and French colors flying ;
and having sent a summons to me, in his Britannic Majesty's
name, to surrender the fort, I requested two days consideration,
which was granted
It was now a critical period with us. We were a small num-
ber in the garrison — a powerful army before our walls, whose
appearance proclaimed inevitable death, fearfully painted, and
marking their footsteps with desolation. Death was preferable
to captivity ; and if taken by storm, we must inevitably be de-
Toted to-destruction. In this situation we concluded to main-
tain our garrison, if possible. We immediately proceeded to
collect what we could of our horses and other cattle, and bring
them through the posterns into the fort ; and in the evening of
the 9th, I returned answer that we were determined to defend
onr fort while a man was living. "Now," said I to their com-
mander, \iho stood attentively hearing my sentiments, "we
344 COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY.
laugh at your formidable preparations ; but thank you for
giving us notice and time to provide for our defense. Your
efforts will not prevail; for our gates shall forever deny you
admittance." Whether this answer affected their courage or
not I cannot tell ; but contrary to our expectations, they formed
a scheme to deceive us, declaring it was their orders, from Gov-
ernor Hamilton, to take us captives, and not to destroy us ; but
if nine of us would come out and treat with them, they would
immediately withdraw their forces from our walls, and return
home peaceably. This sounded grateful in our ears ; and we
agreed to the proposal.
We held the treaty within sixty yards of the garrison, on
purpose to divert them from a breach of honor, as we could not
avoid suspicions of the savages. In this situation the articles
were formally agreed to, and signed ; and the Indians told us
it was customary with them on such occasions for two Indians
to shake hands with every white man in the treaty, as an
evidence of entire friendship. We agreed to this also, but were
soon convinced their policy was to take us prisoners. They
immediately grappled us ; but, although surrounded by hun-
dreds of savages, we extricated ourselves from them, and escaped
all safe into the garrison, except one that was wounded, through
a heavy fire from their army. They immediately attacked us
on every side, and a constant heavy fire ensued between us, day
and night, for the space of nine days.
In this time the enemy began to undermine our fort, which
was situated sixty yards from Kentucky River. They began at
the water-mark, and proceeded in the bank some distance,
which we understood by their making the water muddy with
the clay ; and we immediately proceeded to disappoint their
design, by cutting a trench across their subterranean passage.
The enemy, discovering our countermine by the clay we threw
out of the fort, desisted from that stratagem ; and experience
now fully convincing them that neither their power nor policy
could effect their purpose, on the 20th day of August they raised
the siege and departed.
During this siege, which threatened death in every form, wo
had two men killed, and four wounded, besides a number of
cattle. We killeu of the enemy thirty-seven, and wounded a
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 845
great number. After they were gone, we picked up one hun-
dred and twenty-five pounds weight of bullets, besides what
stuck in the logs of our fort, which certainly is a great proof of
their industry. Soon after this, I went into the settlement, and
nothing worthy of a place in this account passed in my affairs
for some time.
During my absence from Kentucky, Colonel Bowman carried
on an expedition against the Shawanese, at Old Chilicothe, with
one hundred and sixty men, in July, 1779. Here they arrived
undiscovered, and a battle ensued, which lasted until ten
o'clock, A. M., when Colonel Bowman, finding he could not
succeed at this time, retreated about thirty miles. The Indians,
in the meantime, collecting all their forces, pursued and over-
took him, when a smart fight continued near two hours, not to
the advantage of Colonel Bowman's party.
Colonel Harrod proposed to mount a number of horse, and
furiously to rush upon the savages, who at this time fought
with remarkable fury. This desperate step had a happy effect,
broke their line of battle, and the savages fled on all sides. In
these two battles we had nine killed, and one wounded. The
enemy's loss uncertain, only two scalps being taken.
On the 22d day of June, 1780, a large party of Indians and
Canadians, about six hundred in number, commanded by Colo-
nel Bird, attacked Riddle's and Martin's stations, at the forks
of Licking River, with six pieces of artillery. They carried this
expedition so secretly, that the unwary inhabitants did not dis-
cover them until they fired upon the forts ; and, not being pre-
pared to oppose them, were obliged to surrender themselves
miserable captives to barbarous savages, who immediately after
tomahawked one man and two women, and loaded all the others
with heavy baggage, forcing them along toward their towns,
able or unable to march. Such as were weak and faint by the
way, they tomahawked. The tender women and helpless chil-
dren fell victims to their cruelty. This, and the savage treat-
ment they received afterward, is shocking to humanity and too
barbarous to relate.
The hostile disposition of the savages and their allies caused
General Clarke, the coinniundant at the Falls of the Ohio, inime-
Hately to begin an expedition with his own regiment, and the
346 COLONEL boone's autobiography.
armed force of the country, against Pecaway, the principal town
of the Shawanese, on a branch of Great Miami, which he ii«islie«l
with great success, took seventeen scalps, and burnt the town
to ashes, with the loss of seventeen men.
About this time I returned to Kentucky with my family ; and
here, to avoid an inquiry into my conduct, the reader being
before informed of my bringing my family to Kentucky, I am
under the necessity of informing him that, during my captivity
with the Indians, my wife, who despaired of ever seeing me
again — expecting the Indians had put a period to my life, op-
pressed with the distresses of the country, and bereaved of me,
her only happiness — had, before I returned, transported my
family and goods on horses through the wilderness, amid a mul-
titude of dangers, to her father's house in North Carolina.
Shortly after the troubles at Boonesborough, I went to them,
and lived peaceably there until this time. The history of niy
going home, and returning with my family, forms a series of
difficulties, an account of which would swell a volume ; and.
being foreign to my purpose, I shall purposely omit them.
I settled my family in Boonesborough once more ; and shortly
after, on the 6th day of October, 1780, I went in company with
my brother to the Blue Licks ; and, on our return home, we
were fired upon by a party of Indians. They shot him and
pursued me, by the scent of their dog, three miles ; but I killed
the dog, and escaped. The winter soon came on, and was very
severe, which confined the Indians to their wigwams.
The severities of this winter caused great difficulties in Ken-
tucky. The enemy had destroyed most of the corn the summer
before. This necessary article was scarce and dear, and the
inhabitants lived chiefly on the flesh of buffalo. The circum-
stances of many were very lamentable ; however, being a hardy
race of people, and accustomed to difficulties and necessities,
they were wonderfully supported through all their sufferings,
until the ensuing autumn, when we received abundance from
the fertile soil,
Toward spring we were frequently harassed by Indians ; and
in May, 1782, a party assaulted Ashton's station, killed one man,
and took a negro prisoner. Captain Ashton, with twenty-five
men, pursued and overtook the savages, and a smart fight
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 347
ensued, which lasted two hours ; but they, being superior in
number, obliged Captain Ashton's party to retreat, with the loss
of eight killed, and four mortally wounded ; their brave com-
mander himself being numbered among the dead.
The Indians continued their hostilities ; and, about the 10th
of August following, two boys were taken from Major Hoy's
station. This party was pursued by Captain Holder and seven-
teen men, who were also defeated, with the loss of four men
killed, and one wounded. Our affairs became more and more
alarming. Several stations which had lately been erected in the
country were continually infested with savages, stealing their
horses and killing the men at every opportunity. In a field,
near Lexington, an Indian shot a man, and running to scalp him,
was himself shot from the fort, and fell dead upon his enemy.
Every day we experienced recent mischiefs. The barbarous
savage nations of Shawanese, Cherokees, Wyandots, Tawas,
Pelawares, and several others near Detroit, united in a war
against us, and assembled their choicest warriors at Old Chili-
cothe, to go on the expedition, in order to destroy us, and en-
tirely depopulate the country. Their savage minds were
inflamed to mischief by two abandoned men, Captains M'KtrS
and Girty. These led them to execute every diabolical scheme,
and on the 15th day of August, commanded a party of Indians
and Canadians, of about five hundred in number, against Bryant's
station, five miles from Lexington. Without demanding a sur-
render, they furiously assaulted the garrison, which was happily
prepared to oppose them ; and, after they had expended much
ammunition in vain, and killed the cattle round the fort, not
being likely to make themselves masters of this place, they
raised the siege, and departed in the morning of the third day
after they came, with the loss of about thirty killed, and the
number of wounded uncertain. Of the garrison, four were
killed, and three wounded.
On the 18th day, Colonel Todd, Colonel Trigg, Major Ilarland,
and myself, speedily collected one hundred and seventy-six men,
well armed, and pursued the savages. They had marched be-
yond the Blue Licks, to a remarkable bend of the main fork of
Licking River, about forty-three miles from Lexington, where
we overtook them on the 19th day. The savages observing us,
348 COLONEL boone's autobiography.
gave way ; and we, being ignorant of their numbers, passed the
river. When the enemy saw our proceedings, having greatly
the advantage of us in situation, they formed the line of battle
from one bend of Licking to the other, about a mile from the
Blue Licks. An exceeding fierce battle immediately began, for
about fifteen minutes, when we being overpowered by numbers,
were obliged to retreat, with the loss of sixty-seven men, seven
of whom were taken prisoners. The brave and much-lamented
Colonels Todd and Trigg, Major Harland, and my second son,
were among the dead. We were informed that the Indians,
numbering their dead, found they had four killed more than
we ; and therefore four of the prisoners they had taken were,
by general consent, ordered to be killed in a most barbarous
manner by the young warriors, in order to train them up to
cruelty; and then they proceeded to their towns.
On our retreat we were met by Colonel Logan, hastening to
join as, with a number of well-armed men. This powerful
assistance we unfortunately wanted in the battle ; for, notwith-
standing the enemy's superiority of numbers, they acknowledged
that, if they had received one more fire from us, they should
undoubtedly have given way. So valiantly did our small party
fight, that to the memory of those who unfortunately fell in the
battle, enough of honor cannot be paid. Had Colonel Logan
and his party been with us, it is highly probable we should
have given the savages a total defeat.
I cannot reflect upon this dreadful scene, but sorrow fills my
heart. A zeal for the defense of their country led these heroes
to the scene of action, though with a few men to attack a pow
erful army of experienced warriors. When we gave way, they
pursued us with the utmost eagerness, and in every quartyi
spread destruction. The river was difficult to cross, and many
were killed in the flight — some just entering the river, some
in the water, others after crossing, in ascending the cliffs. Some
escaped on horseback, a few on foot ; and, being dispersed every-
where in a few hours, brought the melancholy news of this
unfortunate battle to Lexington. Many widows were now made.
The reader may guess what sorrow filled the hearts of the inhab-
itants, execeding any thing that I am able to describe. Being
reinforced, we returned to bury the dead, and found their
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. . 349
bodies strewed everywhere, cut and mangled in a dreadful man-
ner. This mournful scene exhibited a horror almost unparal-
leled: some torn and eaten by wild beasts ; those in the river
eaten by fishes ; all in such a putrefied condition, that no one
could be distinguished from another.
As soon as General Clark, then at the Falls of the Ohio — who
was ever our ready friend, and merits the love and gratitude of
all his countrymen — understood the circumstances of this
unfortunate action, he ordered an expedition, with all possible
haste, to pursue the savages, which was so expeditiously effected,
that we overtook them within two miles of their towns ; and
probably might have obtained a great victory, had not two of
their number met us about two hundred poles before we came
up. These returned quick as lightning to their camp, with the
alarming news of a mighty army in view. The savages fled in
the utmost disorder, evacuated their towns, and reluctantly left
their territory to our mercy. We immediately took possession
of Old Chilicothe without opposition, being deserted by its in-
habitants. We continued our pursuit through five towns on
the Miami River, Old Chilicothe, Pecaway, New Chilicothe,
Will's Towns, and Chilicothe — burnt them all to ashes, entirely
destroyed their corn, and other fruits, and everywhere spread a
scene of desolation in the country. In this expedition we took
seven prisoners and five scalps, with the loss of only four men,
two of whom were accidentally killed by our own army.
This campaign in some measure damped the spirits of the
Indians, and made them sensible of our superiority. Their
connections were dissolved, their armies scattered, and a future
invasion put entirely out of their power ; yet they contimied
to practice mischief secretly upon the inhabitants, in the ex-
posed parts of the country.
In October following, a party made an incursion into that
district called the Crab Orchard ; and one of them, being ad-
vanced some distance before the others, boldly entered the
house of a poor defenseless family, in which was only a negro
man, a woman, and her children, terrified with the apprehen-
sions of immediate death. The savage, perceiving their defense-
lesss condition, without offering violence to the family, attempted
to capture the negro, who happily proved an overmatch for him,
350 . COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBTOGRAPHT.
threw liim on the ground, and in the struggle, the mother of the
children drew an axe from a corner of the cottage, and cut his
head off, while her little daughter shut the door. The savages
instantly appeared, and applied their tomahawks to the door.
An old rusty gun-brrrel, without a lock, lay in a corner, which
the mother put through a small crevice, and the savages, per-
ceiving it, fled. In the meantime, the alarm spread through the
neighborhood ; the armed men collected immediately, and pur-
sued the ravagers into the wilderness. Thus Providence, by
the means of this negro, saved the whole of the poor family
from destruction. From that time until the happy return of
peace between the United States and Great Britain, the Indians
did us no mischief. Finding the great king beyond the water
disappointed in his expectations, and conscious of the impor-
tance of the Long Knife, and their own wretchedness, some of
the nations immediately desired peace ; to which, at present
[1784], they seem universally disposed, and are sending embas-
sadors to General Clarke, at the Falls of the Ohio, with the
minutes of their councils.
To conclude, I can now say that I have verified the saying of
an old Indian who signed Colonel Henderson's deed. Taking
me by the hand, at the delivery thereof — "Brother," said he,
"we have given you a fine land, but I believe you will have
much trouble in settling it." My footsteps have often been
marked with blood, and therefore I can truly subscribe to its
original name. Two darling sous and a brother have I lost by
savage hands, which have also taken from me forty valuable
horses, and abundance of cattle. Many dark and sleepless nights
have I been a companion for owls, separated from the cheerful
society of men, scorched by the summer's sun, and pinched by
the winter's cold — an instrument ordain&d to settle the wilder-
ness. But now the scene is changed : peace crowns the sylvan
shade.
What thanks, what ardent and ceaseless thanks are due to
that all-superintending Providence whioh has turned a cruel
war into peace, brought order out of confusion, made the fierce
savages placid, and turned away their hostile weapons from our
jountry I May the same Almighty Goodness banish the accursed
monster, war, from all lands, with her hated associates, rapine
COLONEL BOONE'S AUTOBIOGRAPHY. 351
and insatiable ambition ! Let peace, descending from her native
heaven, bid her olives spring amid the joyful nations ; and
plenty, in league with commerce, scatter blessings from her
copious hand !
This account of my adventures will inform the reader of the
most remarkable events of this country. I now live in peace
and safety, enjoying the sweets of liberty j and the bounties of
Providence, with my once fellow-sufferers, in this delightful
country, which I have seen purchased with a vast expense of
blood and treasure : delighting in the prospect of its being, in a
short time, one of the most opulent and powerful States on the
continent of North America ; which, with the love and gratitude
of my countrymen, I esteem a sufficient reward for all my toil
and dangers.
DANIEL BOONE.
Fayette County, Kentucky.
THE END.
BOOKS
Published by G. G. Evans,
4.39 Chestnut St., Philadelphia.
T. S. ARTHUR'S WORKS.
The following Books are by T. S. Arthur, the well-known author, of whom
it has been said, " that dying, ho has not written a word he would wish to
erasb." They are worthy of a place in every household.
ARTHUR'S SKETCHES OF LIFE AND CHARACTER
An octavo volume of over 400 pages, beautifully Illustrated, and
bound in the best English muslin, gilt. Price $2.00.
LIGHTS AND SHADOWS OF REAL LIFE.
With an Autobiography and Portrait of the Author. Over 500
pages, octavo, with line tinted Engravings. Price $2.00.
TEN NIGHTS IN A BAR-ROOM, and what I saw there.
This powerfully-written work, one of the best by its popular
author, has met with an immense sale. It is a large 1 21110.,
illustrated with a beautiful Mezzotint Engraving, by Sariain;
printed on fine white paper, and bound in the best English
muslin, gilt back. Price, $1.00.
GOLDEN GRAINS FROM LIFE'S HARVEST-FIELD.
Bound in gilt back and sides, cloth, with a beautiful Mezzotint
engraving. i2mo. Price $1.00.
WHAT CAN WOMAN DO.
lino., with Mezzotint engraving. Price $1.00.
" Our purpose is to show, in a series of Life Pictures, what woman can d<\
Bu Mell for good as for evil."
ANGEL OF THE HOUSEHOLD, and other tales.
Cloth, 12m*., with Mezzotint engraving. Price $1.00.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBUSHtl) BY G. G. EVANS.
ARTHUR'S HOME LIBRARY.
TITie following four volumes contain nearly 500 pages each, and are illaa*
trated with line Mezzotiot engravings. Bound in the best manner, and
sold separately or in sets. They have been introduced into the District,
Sabbath School, and other Libraries, and are considered one of the best
series of the Author.]
THREE ERAS IN WOMAN'S LIFE.
Containing Maiden, Wife .^nd Mother. Cloth, l2mo., with Mez-
zotint engraving. Price, $1.00.
" This, by many, is considered Mr. Arthur's best work."
TALES OF MARRIED LIFE.
Containing Lovers and Husbands, Sweethearts and Wives, and
Married and Single. Cloth, izmo., with Mezzotint engraving.
Price $1.00.
"In this volume maybe found some valuable hints for wives and hus-
bands, as well as lor the young.''
TALES OF REAL LIFE.
Containing Bell Martin, Pride and Principle, Mary Ellis, Family
Pride and Alice Melville. ' Cloth, i2mo., with Mezzotint
engraving. Price $1,00.
" This volume gives the experience of real life by many who found not
their ideal."
THE MARTYR WIFE.
Containing Madeline, the Heiress, The Martyr Wife and Ruined
Gamester. Cloth, i2mo., with Mezzotint engraving. $1.00.
"Contains several sketches of thrilling interest."
THE ANGEL AND THE DEMON.
A Book of Startling Interest. A handsome 1 2mo volume, $1.00.
"In this exciting s'.ory, Mr. Arthur has taken hold of the reader's attention
with a more '^han usually vigorous grasp, and keeps him absorbed to the end
of the volurre."
THE WAY TO PROSPER,
And other tales. Cloth, i2mo., with engraving. Price $1.0*
TRUE RICHES; or WEALTH WITHOUT WINGS,
And other Tat.es. Cloth, i2mo., with Mezzotint engraving
Prire, $1.00.
LIST OP BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS. J
THE YOUNG LADY AT HOME.
A Series of Home Stories for American Women. i2mo. $1.00
TRIALS AND CONFESSIONS OF A HOUSEKEEPER.
With 14 Spirited Illustrations. i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
The range of subjects in this book embrace the grave and instructive, m
W«rl; as the agreeable and amusing. No Lady reader familiar with the trials
and perplexities incident to Housekeeping, can fail to recognize many of her
own experiences, for every picture here presented has been drawn from life.
THE WITHERED HEART.
With fine Mezzotint Frontispiece. i2mo., Cloth. Price $1.00.
This work has gone through several editions in England, although pub-
lished but a short time, and has had the most flattering notices from the
English Press.
STEPS TOWARD HEAVEN.
A Series of Lay Sermons for Converts in the Great Awakening.
l2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
THE HAND BUT NOT THE HEART;
Or, Life Trials of Jessie Loring. izmo., cloth. Price, Si. 00.
THE GOOD TIME COMING.
Large l2mo., with fine Mezzotint Frontispiece. Price, $1.00.
LEAVES FROM THE BOOK OF HUMAN LIFE.
Large l2mo. With 30 illustrations and steel plate. Price $1.00.
"It includes some of the best humorous sketches of the author."
HEART HISTORIES AND LIFE PICTURES.
izmo Cloth. Price $1.00.
*■ In the preparation of this volume, we have endeavored to show, that
whatever tends to awaken our sympathies towards others, is an individual
benefit as well as a common good."
SPARING TO SPEND; or, the Loftons and Pinkertons
;zmo., cloth. Price $1.00.
The purpose of this volume is to exhibit the evils that flow torn *ho too
ecmmun lack of prudence.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLtSf ED BY G. G. EVANS.
HOME SCENES,
izmo. Cloth. Price $1.00.
This Book is designed to aid in the work of overcoming what is evil and
selfish, that home lights may dispel home shadows.
THE OLD MAN'S BRIDE.
l2mo. Cloth. Price$i.oo.
This is a powerfully written Book, showing the folly of unequal marriages.
ADVICE TO YOUNG LADIES ON THEIR DUTIES AND
CONDUCT IN LIFE.
By T. S. Arthur. A new and greatly enlarged edition. i2mo.,
cloth. Steel plate. Price $1.00.
ADVICE TO YOUNG MEN ON VARIOUS IMPORTANT
SUBJECTS.
By T. S. Arthur. A new and greatly enlarged edition. l2mo.,
cloth. Ste.l plate. Price $1.00.
TWENTY YEARS AGO AND NOW.
By T. S. Arthur. i2mo., cloth, mezzotint engraving. Price
'$1.00.
BIOGRAPHIES.
LIFE AND EXPLORATIONS OF DR. E. K. KANE,
And other Distinguished American Explorers. Including Ledvard,
Wilkes, Perry, &c. Containing narratives of their researches
and adventures in remote and interesting portions of the Globe.
By Samuel M. Smucker, LL.D. With a fine Mezzotint Por-
trait of Dr. Kane, in his Arctic costume. Price $1.00.
THE LIFE AND REIGN OF NICHOLAS I.,
Emperor of Russia. With descriptions of Russian Society and
Government, and a full and complete History of the War in
the East. Also, Sketches of Schamyl, the Circassian, an other
Distinguished Characters. ByS. M. Smucker, LL.D. Beautifully
Illustrated. Over 400 pages, large l2mo. Price $1.25.
THE PUBLIC AND PRIVATE LIFE OF DAN'L WEBSTER.
By Gen. S. P. Lyman. i2mo., cloth. Price $i.co.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY O. C. EVANS.
THE MASTER SPIRIT OF THE AGE.
THE PUBLIC AND PRIVATE HISTORY OF NAPOLEON
THE THIRD.
With Biographical Notices of his most Distinguished Ministers,
Generals and Favorites. By S. M. Smucker, LL.D. This in-
teresting and valuable work is embellished with splendid steel
plates, done by Sartain in his best style, including the Emperor,
the Empress, Queen Hortense, and the Countess Castiglione.
400 pages, izmo. Price $1.25.
MEMOIRS OF ROBERT HOUDIN,
The celebrated French Conjuror. Translated from the French.
With a copious Index. By Dr. R. Shelton Mackenzie. This
book is full of interesting and entertaining anecdotes of the great
Wizard, and gives descriptions of the manner of performing
many of his most curious tricks and transformations. izmo.,
cloth. Price $1.00.
LIFE AND ADVENTURES OF DAVID CROCKETT.
Written by himself, with Notes and Additions. Splendidly illus-
trated with engravings, from original designs. By George G.
White, izmo., cloth. Price $1.00.
LIFE AND TIMES OF DANIEL BOONE.
Including an account of the Early Settlements of Kentucky. By
Cecil B. Hartley. With splendid illustrations, from original
drawings by George G. White, izmo., cloth. Price $100.
LIFE AND ADVENTURES OF LEWIS WETZEL.
Together with Biographical Sketches of Simon Kenton, Benjamin
Logan, Samuel Brady, Isaac Shelby, and other distinguished
Warriors and Hunters of the West. By Cecil B. Hartley.
With splendid illustrations, from original drawings by George
G.White, izmo., cloth. Price $1.00.
LIFE AND TIMES OF GENERAL FRANCIS MARION,
The Hero of the American Revolution ; giving full accounts of
his many perilous adventures and hair-breadth escapes amongst
the British and Tories in the Southern States, during the struggle
for liberty. By W. Gilmore Simms. izmo., cloth. $1.00.
LIST OP BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS.
LIFE OF GENERAL SAMUEL HOUSTON,
The Hunter, Patriot, and Statesman of Texas. With nine iliu»
trations. izmo., cloth. Price $1.00.
LIVES OF GENERAL HENRY LEE AND GENERAL
THOMAS SUMPTER.
Comprising a History of the War in the Southern Department of
the United States. Illustrated, i2mo, cloth. $1.00.
DARING & HEROIC DEEDS OF AMERICAN WOMEN.
Comprising Thrilling Examples of Courage, Fortitude, Devoted-
ness, and Self-Sacrifice, among the Pioneer Mothers of the
Western Country. By John Frost, LL.D. Price $1.00.
LIVES OF FEMALE MORMONS.
A Narrative of facts Stranger than Fiction. By Metta Victoria
Fuller. i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
LIVES OF ILLUSTRIOUS WOMEN OF ALL AGES.
Containing tne Empress Josephine, Lady Jane Gray, Bea'ricc
Cenci, Joan of Arc, Anne Boleyn, Charlotte Corday, Zenobia,
&c, &c. Embellished with Fine Steel Portraits, izmo., cloth.
Price $1.00.
THE LIVES AND EXPLOITS OF THE MOST NOTED
BUCCANEERS & PIRATES OF ALL COUNTRIES.
Handsomely illustrated. 1 vol. Cloth. Price $1.00.
HIGHWAYMEN, ROBBERS AND BANDITTI OF ALL
COUNTRIES.
With Colored and other Engravings. Handsomely bound in one
volume. i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
HEROES AND PATRIOTS OF THE SOUTH;
Comprising Lives of General Francis Marion, General William
Moultrie, General Andrew Pickens, and Governor John
Rutledge. By Cecil B. Hartley. Illustrated, l2mo., cloth.
Price $1.00.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS.
KIT CARSON.
•Life of Christopher Carson, the celebrated Rocky Mountain
Hunter, Trapper and Guide, with a full description of his
Hunting Exploits, Hair-breadth Escapes, and adventures with
the Indians; together with his services rendered the United
States Government, as Guide to the various Exploring Expedi-
tions under John C. Fremont and others. By Charles Burdett*
With six illustrations. l2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
THE LIFE AND TIMES OF GEORGE WASHINGTON.
By S. M. Smucker, LL.D., author of " The Life of Thomas
Jefferson," "Life of Alexander Hamilton," etc., etc. nrao.,
cloth, with Steel Portrait. Price $1.00.
THE LIFE AND TIMES OF HENRY CLAY.
By S. M. Smucker, LL.D., author of the "Lives of Washington,"
"Jefferson," etc. i2mo., cloth, Steel Portrait. Price $1.00.
LIFE OF ANDREW JACKSON.
Containing an Authentic History of the Memorable Achievements
of the American Army under General Jackson, before New
Orleans. By Alexander Walker. i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
LIFE OF BENJAMIN FRANKLIN.
By O. L. Holley. With Steel Portrait and six Illustrations.
izmo., cloth. Price $1.00.
LIVES OF THE SIGNERS OF THE DECLARATION OF
AMERICAN INDEPENDENCE.
By B. J. Lossing. Steel Frontispiece, and fifty portraits. l2mo.,
cloth. Price $1.00.
LIFE OF CAPT. JOHN SMITH OF VIRGINIA.
By W. Gillmore Simm3. Illustrated, l2mo., cloth, Price, $i oo.
THE THREE MRS. JUDSONS,
The Female Missionaries. By Cecil B. Hartley. A new and
carefully revised edition, with steel portraits. i2mo. Price,
$i oo.
LIST OT BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS.
INGRAHAM'S THREE GREAT WORKS.
THE
Prince of the House of David;
Or, Three Years in the Holy City. Being a series of the let-
ters of Adina, a Jewess of Alexandria, supposed to be sojourning
in Jerusalem in the days of Herod, addressed to her Father a
wealthy Jew in Egypt, and relating, as if by an eye-witness, all
the scenes and wonderful incidents in the life of Jesus of Naz-
areth, from his Baptism in Jordan to his Crucifixion on Calvary.
New edition, carefully revised and corrected by the author.
Rev. J. H. Ingraham, LL.D., Rector of Christ Church, and
St. Thomas' Hall, Holly Springs, Miss. With five splendid
illustrations, one large i2mo., volume, cloth. Price, $i 25.
Full Gilt sides and edges. Price $2.00.
The same work in German. i2mo., cloth. Price, $1.25.
THE PILLAR OF FIRE;
Or, Israel in Bondage. Being an account of the Wonderful
Scenes in the Life of the Son of Pharaoh's Daughter, (Moses).
Together with Picturesque Sketches of the Hebrews under their
Task-masters. By Rev. J. H. Ingraham, LLD., author of the
" Prince of the House of David." With steel Frontispiece.
Large i2mo., cloth. Price, $1 25; the same work, full gilt
sides and edges. Price, $2 00.
THE THRONE OF DAVID;
P'om the Consecration of the Shepherd of Bethlehem, to the Re-
bellion of Prince Absalom. Being an illustration of the Splendor,
Power and Dominion of the Reign of the Shepherd, Poet,
Warrior, King and Prophet, Ancestor and type of Jesus, address-
ed by an Assyrian Ambassador, resident at the Court of Jeru-
salem, to his Lord and King on the Throne of Nineveh; where-
in the magnificence of Assyria, as well as the magnificence of
Judea, is presented to the reader as by an eye-witness. By the
Rev. J. H. Ingraham, LL.D., Rector of Christ Church and
St. Thomas' Hall, Holly Springs, Miss., author of the " Prince
of the House of David" and the "Pillar of Fire." With five
splendid illustrations. Large i2mo., cloth. Price $ I 25; the
same work, full gilt sides and edges. Price, $2 00.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS.
The Sunny South ;
OR,
THE SOUTHERNER AT HOME.
EMBRACING
Five years' experience of a Northern Governess in the Land of the
Sugar and the Cotton. Edited by Professor J. H. Ingraham,
of Miss. Large i2mo., cloth. Price, <$i 25.
A BUDGET OF
HUMOROUS POETRY,
COMPRISING
Specimens of the best and most Humorous Productions of the
popular American and Foreign Poetical Writers of the day.
By the author of the " Book of Anecdotes and Budget of
Fun." One volume, izmo., cloth. Price $1 oo;
The World in a Pocket Book.
BY
WILLIAM H. CRUMP.
NEW AND REVISED EDITION, BROUGHT DOWN TO
i860.
This work is a Compendium of Useful Knowledge and General
Reference, dedicated to the Manufacturers, Farmers, Merchants,
and Mechanics of the United States — to all, in short, with whom
time is money — and whose business avocations render the acqui-
sition of extensive and diversified information desirable, by the
shortest possible road. This volume, it is hoped, will be found
worthy of a place in every household — in every family. Jt
may indeed be termed a library in itself. Large i2mo. Price,
Si 25.
10 LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS.
THE SPIRIT LAND,
nmo., cloth, with Mezzotint Engraving. Price 81.00.
" These pages are submitted to the public with the counsel of the wisest
»nd best of all ages, that amid the wiley arts of the Adversary, we should cling
to the word of God, the Bible, as the only safe and infallible guide of Faith
and Practice."
THE MORNING STAR ; or, Symbols of Christ.
By Re\ Wm. M. Thayer, author of " Hints for the Household,"
" Pastor's Holiday Gift," &c, &c. i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00
" The symbolical parts of Scriptures arc invested with peculiar attractions.
A familiar acquaintance with them can scarcely fail to increase respect and
love for the Bible."
SWEET HOME; or, Friendship's Golden Altar.
By Frances C. Percival. Mezzotint Frontispiece, 1 2ino., cloth,
gilt back and centre. Price $1.00.
"The object of this book is to awaken the Memories of Home — to remind
as of the old Scenes and old Times."
THE DESERTED FAMILY ;
Or, the Wanderings of an Outcast. By Paul Creyton. i 2mo.,
cloth. Price $1.00.
"An interesting story, which might exert a good influence in softening the
heart, warming the affections, and elevating the soul."
ANNA CLAYTON; or, the Mother's Trial,
A Tale of Real Life. i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
" The principal characters in this tale are drawn from real life — imagina-
tion cannot picture deeper shades <,f sadness, higher or more exquisite joys,
than Truth has woven for us, in the Mother's Trial."
" FASHIONABLE DISSIPATION."
By Metta V. Fuller. Mezzotint Frontispiece, izmo., bound in
cloth, Price $1.00.
THE OLD FARM HOUSE.
By Mrs. Caroline H. Butler Laing, with six splendid Illustra-
tions. 1 2mo., cloth, Price $1.00.
LIST OF BOOKS FUBU5HED BY O. O. EVANS. II
« — , ■ > — - — —
"to the pure all things are pure."
WOMAN AND HER DISEASES.
From the Cradle to the Grave ; adapted exclusively to her instruc-
tion in the Physiology of her system, and all the Diseases of her
Critical Periods. By Edward H. Dixon, M.D. i2mo. Price
$1.00.
DR. LIVINGSTONE'S TRAVELS AND RESEARCHES
OF SIXTEEN YEARS IN THE WILDS OF SOUTH
AFRICA.
One volume, izmo., cloth, fine edition, printed upon superior
paper, with numerous illustrations. Price $1.25. Cheap edi-
tion, price $1.00.
This is a work of thrilling adventures and hair-breadth escapes among
savage beasts, and more garage men. Dr. Livingstone was alone, and unaid-
ed by any white man, traveling only with African attendants, among different
tribes and nations, all strange to him, and many of them hostile, and alto-
gether forming the most astonishing hook of travels the world has ever
seen. All acknowledge it is the most readable book published.
ANDERSSON'S EXPLORATIONS AND DISCOVERIES.
Giving accounts of many Pilous Adventures, and Thrilling Inci-
dents, during Four Years' Wanderings in the Wilds of South
Western Africa. By C. J. Andersson, LL.D., F.R.S. With
an Introductory Letter, by J. C. Fremont. One volume, 121110.,
cloth. With Numerous Illustrations. Price, $1.25.
INDIA AND THE INDIAN MUTINY.
Comprising a Complete History of Hindoostan, from the earliest
times to the present day, with full particulars of the Recent
Mutiny in India. Illustrated with numerous engravings. By
Henry Frederick Malcom. Large i2mo., volume of about
450 pages. Price, $1.25.
THE UNION TEXT BOOK.
Containing Selections from the Writings and Speeches of
Daniel Webster. The .Declaration of Independence, the
Constitution of the United States, Washington's Farewell Ad-
dress, &c, with Steel Portrait. Large i2mo., 904 pages, Cloth.
Price, $1 .00.
IX LIST OF BOOKS PUEUSHED BY G. G. EVANS.
SEVEN YEARS IN THE WILDS OF SIBERIA,
A Narrative of Seven Years' Explorations and Adventures in
Oriental and Western Siberia, Mongolia, the Kir his Steppes,
Chinese Tartary, and Part of Central Asia. By Thomas
William Atkinson. With numerous Illustrations, izmo., clcth,
price $1.25.
SIX YEARS IN NORTHERN AND CENTRAL AFRICA.
Travels and Discoveries in North and Central Africa, being a
Journal of an Expedition undertaken undei the auspices of
H. B. M.'s Government, in the years 1849-1855. By Hknrt
Barth, Ph. D., D.C.L., Fellow of the Royal Geographical and
Asiatic Societies, &c, &c. izmo., cloth, price Si. 25.
THREE VISITS TO MADAGASCAR
During the years 1853, 1854, 1856, including a journey to the
Capital ; with notices of the Natural History of the Country
and of the present Civilization of the People, by the Rev. Wm.
Ellis, F.H.S., author of " Polynesian Researches." Illustrated
by engravings from photographs, &c. izmo., cloth. $1.25.
CAPT. COOK'S VOYAGES ROUND THE WORLD.
One volume, izmo., cloth. Price $1.00.
BOOK OF ANECDOTES AND BUDGET OF FUN.
Containing a collection of over One Thousand Laughable Sayings,
Rich Jokes, etc. izmo., cloth, extra gilt back, $1.00.
"Nothing is so well calculated to preserve the healthful action of tha
human system as a good hearty laugh."
BOOK OF PLAYS FOR HOME AMUSEMENT.
Being a collection of Original, Altered and well-selected Tragedies,
Comedies, Dramas, Farces, Burlesques, Charades, Comic Lec-
tures, etc. Carefully arranged and specially adapted for Private
Representation, with full directions for Performance. By Silas
S. Steele, Dramatist. One volume, 1 zmo., cloth. Price $ 1 .00.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. O. EVANS. 13
A HISTORY OF ITALY,
AND THE WAR OF 1859.
Giving the causes of the War, with Biographical Sketches of Sov-
eieigns, Statesmen and Military Commanders; Descriptions and
Statistics of the Country ; with finely engraved Portraits of Louis
Napoleon, Emperor of France Frances Joseph, Emperor of
Austria ; Victor Emanuel, King" of Sardinia, and Garribaldi, the
Champion of Italian Freedom. Together with the official ac-
counts of the Battles of Montebello, Palestro, Magenta, Maleg-
nano, Solferino, etc., etc., and Maps of Italy, Austria, and all
the adjacent Countries, by
MADAME JULIE DE MARGUERITTES.
With an introduction by Dr. R. Shelton Mackenzie, one volume,
121110., cloth, price $1.25.
NOBLE DEEDS OF THE GREAT AND BRAVE OF ALL
AGES AND NATIONS.
Selected as examples for the emulation of Youth, with numerous
Illustrations. 1 21110., Cloth, Gilt Back. Price, §1.00.
THE BOOK OF POPULAR SONGS.
Being a compendium of the best Sentimental, Comic, Negro, Nation-
al, Patiiotic, Military, Naval, Social, Convivial, and Pathetic
Ballads and Melodies, as sung by the most celebrated Opeia
Singers, Negro Minstrels, and Comic Vocalists of the day.
One volume, umo., cloth. Price $1 00.
THE AMERICAN PRACTICAL COOKERY BOOK;
Or Housekeeping made easy, pleasant, and econmical in all its
departments. To which are added directions for setting out
Tables, and giving Entertainments. Directions for Jointing,
Trussing, and Carving, and many hundred new Receipts in
Cookerv and Housekeeping. With 50 engravings. i2mo.,
cloth. Price $1.00.
] 4 LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY O. G. EVANS.
RECORDS OF THE REVOLUTIONARY WAR.
Containing the Military and Financial Correspondence of distin-
guished officers; names of the officers and privates of regiments,
companies and corps, with the dates of. their commissions and
enlistments. General orders of Washington, Lee, and Green ;
with a list of distinguished prisoners of war ; the time of their
capture, exchange, etc. ; to which is added the half-pay acts of
the Continental Congress ; the Revolutionary pension laws ; and
a list of the officers of the Continental army who acquired the
right to half-pay, commutation, and lands, &c. By T. W. Saf-
fell. Large izmo., $1.25.
THE ROMANCE OF THE REVOLUTION.
being a history of the personal adventures, romantic incidents and
exploits incidental to the War of Independence — with tinted
illustrations. Large i2mo., $1.25.
THE QUEEN'S FATE.
A tale of the days of Herod. i2mo., cloth, with Steel Illustra-
tions. $1.00.
"A recital of events, of an awe-arousing period, in a familiar and interest-
ing manner."
"LIVING AND LOVING."
A collection of Sketches. By Miss Virginia F. Townsend. —
Large 1 zmo., with fine steel portrait of the author. Bound in
cluth. Price $1.00.
We might say many things in favor of this delightful publication, but we
aeem it unnecessary. Husbands should buy it for their wives : lovers should
buy it fur their sweet-hearts : friends should buy it for their friends. — Goc/ej/'j
Lady^a Book,
WHILE IT WAS MORNING.
By Virginia F. Townsend, author of " Living and Loving."
l2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
THE ANGEL VISITOR ; or, Voices of the Heart.
1 zmo., cloth, with Mezzotint Engraving. Price $1.00.
" The mission of this volume is to aid in doing good to those in affliction.*
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY O. C. EVANS. 1 5
THE LADIES' HAND BOOK
OF
Fancy and Ornamental Needle-Work.
COMPRISING
Full directions with patterns for working in Embroidery, Applique,
Braiding, Crochet, Knitting, Netting, Tatting, Quilting, Tam-
bour aud Gobelin Tapestry, Broderie Anglaise, Guipure Work,
Canvass Work, Worsted Work, Lace Work, Bead Work,
Stitching, Patch Work, Frivolite, &c. Illustrated whh 262
Engraved Patterns, taken from original designs. By Miss
Florence Hartley. One volume, Quarto Cloth. Price,
$1 25.
The Ladies' Book of Etiquette,
AND
MANUAL OF POLITENESS.
A Hand Book for the use of Ladies in Polite Society. By
Florence Hartley. 121110., cloth. Price, Si oo.
The Gentlemen's Book of Etiquette,
MANUAL OF POLITENESS.'
Being a Complete Guide for a Gentleman's Conduct in all his
relations toward Society. By Cecil B. Hartley. i2tno.
Price, $1 00
1 6 LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS.
LECTURES FOR THE PEOPLE:
BY THE
Rev. H. STOWELL BROWN,
Of the Myrtle Street Baftist Chapel, Liverpoil, England.
First Series, published under a special arrangement with the author.
With a Biographical introduction by Dr. R. Shelton Mackenzie.
With a splendidly engraved Steel Portrait. One vol., 414 pages.
l2mo., cloth. Price $l.co.
Mr. Brown's lectures fill an important place, for which we have no other
took. The style is clear, the spirit is kiud, the reasoning careful, and the
ar^um^nt conclusive. We are persuaded that this book will render more
good than any book of sermons or lectures that have been published in this
lyth century. — Liverpool Mercury.
THE HOME BOOK OF HEALTH AND MEDICINE;
Or, The Laws and Means of Physical Culture, adapted to
practical use. Embracing a treatise on Dyspepsia, Digestion,
Breathing, Ventilation, Laws of the Skin, Consumption, how
prevented ; Clothing, Food, Exercise, Rest, &c. By W. A.
Alcott, M. D. With 31 illustrations, Large izmo. Price,
$1.25.
LIFE OF THE EMPRESS JOSEPHINE,
First Wife of Napoleon I. Illustrated with Steel Portraits. «By
J. T. Laurens, author of "Heroes and Patriots of the South."
l2mo. cloth. Price, $1.00.
LIVES OF THE HEROES OF THE AMERICAN
REVOLUTION.
Comprising the Lives of Washington and his Generals. The
Declaration of Independence. The Constitution of the United
States. The Inaugural, First Annual. and Farewell Addresses
of Washington. With Portraits. l2mo., cloth. Price $1.00
COLUMBA; A Tale of Corsica.
By Prosper Merimee. As a picture of Corsican life and manners,
Coiumba. is unequalled. In one handsome volume. Price $i.qo
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. F.VAN3. 17
LIGHTS AND SHADOWS OF A PASTOR'S LIFE.
Bv S. H. Elliott. One volume, i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00
" This is a well-written, highly instructive book. It is a story of the life
teachings, and life-trials of a good man, whose great aim was to elevate,
morally and intellectually, his fellow-men. Like many of his nature and
temperament, some of his views were Utopian. But his suceet-ses mid
failures, with the causes of these, are painted with a masterly hand. There
is unusual strength aad vitality in this volume."
THREE PER CENT. A MONTH;
Or, the Perils of Fast Living. A Warning to Young Men.
By Chas. Burdett. One volume, l2ino., cloth. Price $1.00.
"The style of this book is direct and effective, particularly fitting the
impression which such a story should make. It is a very spirited and in-
structive tale, leaving a good impression both upon the reader's sensibilities
ami morals."
EVENINGS AT HOME;
Or, Tales for the Fireside. By Jane C. Campbell. One
volume, i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
" We know of no book in the whole range of modern fictitious litoraturo
we would sooner select for a delightful and instructive companion."
RURAL LIFE;
Or, Prose and Poetry of the Woods and Fields. By Harry
Penciller. One volume, cloth, i2ino. Price $1.00.
" Beautiful landscapes, family scenes and conversations, rural sketches of
woods and vales, of the beauties of verdant fields and fragrant flowers, of
the music of birds and running brooks, all described in an original and un-
studied manner, which cannot fail to delight every one whose character is
imbued with a love of nature."
JOYS AND SORROWS OF HOME;
An Autobiography. By Anna Leland. One volume, i2mo.
cloth. Price $1.00
"This ia one of the most beautiful domestic stories we have ever read,
Intensely interesting, with a natural flow and easiness which leads the reader
Imperceptibly on to the close, and then leaves a regret that the tale is uone."
1 8 LIST OP BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVAN3.
BEAUTY OF WOMAN'S FAITH;
A Tale of Southern Life. One volume, izmo., cloth. Price
$i oo.
" This volume contains the story of a French Emigrant, who first escaped
to England, and afterward settled on a plantation in Louisiana. It is charm-
ingly told, and the strength and endurance of woman's faith >vell illustratod."
THE ORPHAN BOY;
Or, Lights and Shadows of Northern Life. By Jeremy Loud.
One volume, i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
"This is a work illustrating the passions and pleasures, the trials ami tri-
umphs of common life; it is well written and the interest is admirably sus-
tained."
THE ORPHAN GIRLS;
A Tale of Life in the South. By James S. Peacock, M.D.,
of Mississippi. One volume, i2mo., cloth. Price Si.oo.
"The style is fluent and unforced, the description of character well limned,
and the pictures of scenery forcible and felicitous. There is a natural con-
veyance of incidents to the denouement, and the reader closes the volume with
an increased regard for the talent and spirit of tho author."
NEW ENGLAND BOYS;
Or, the Three Apprentices. By A. L. Stimson. One volume,
l2mo., Cloth. Price $i 00.
" This is a very agreeable book, written in a dashing independent style. The
incidents are numerous and striking, the characters life-like, and the plot
sufficiently captivating to enchain the reader's attention to the end of the
volume."
THE KING'S ADVOCATE;
Or, the Adventures of a Witch Finder. One volume, i2rao.,
cloth. Price $1.00.
"This is a book so thoroughly excellent, so exalted in its character, so full
of exquisito piciures of society, and manifesting so much genius, skill, and
knowledge of human nature, that no one can possibly read it without admit-
ting it to be, in every way, a noble book. The story, too, is one of stirring
interest; and it either sweeps you along with its powerful spell, or beguiles
you with its tonderness, pathos and geniality."
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY O. G. EVANS. IQ
SIBYL MONROE; or, THE FORGER'S DAUGHTER.
By Martha Russell. One volume, i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
" It is a spirited, charming story, fall of adventure, friendship and love, with
characters nicely drawn and carefully discriminated. The clear style and
spirit with which the story is presented and the characters developed, will
attract a largo constituency to the perusal."
THE OPEN BIBLE;
As shown in the History of Christianity, from the time of our
Saviour to the Present Day. By Vincent W. Millner. With
a view of the latest developments of Rome's hostility to the
Bible, as exhibited in the Sandwich Islands, in Tuscany, in
Ireland, France, &c, and an expose of the absurdities of the
Immaculate Conception, and the Idolatrous Veneration of the
Virgin Mary. By Rev. Joseph F. Berg, D. D., author of
"The Jesuits," "Church and State," &c, &c. Illustrated with
numerous Engravings. l2mo., cloth, gilt back. Price $1.00.
LIFE OF CHRIST AND HIS APOSTLES.
By the Rev. John Fleetwood. With a History of the Jews, from
the Earliest Period to the Present Time. Large l2mo., bound
in Cloth. Illustrated. Price $1.00.
Octavo edition, with steel engravings. Turkey Antique, $3.50.
BUNYAN'S PILGRIM'S PROGRESS.
Including, "Grace abounding to the Chief of Sinners." Large
1 2mo., 500 pages. Cloth. Beautifully Illustrated. Price$i.oo.
Octavo edition, with steel engravings. Turkey Antique, $3.50.
SCRIPTURE EMBLEMS AND ALLEGORIES.
Being a series of Emblematic Engravings, with explanations and
religious reflections, designed to illustrate Divine Truth. By
Rev. W. Holmes. 121110., cloth. Price $1.25.
HOME MEMORIES;
Or, Social half hours with the Household.
Octavo, 400 pages. Illustrated with line stee1 plates. Cloth,
Price $2.00. Turkey Antique, $3.50.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY G. G. EVANS.
EVANS' POPULAR SPEAKER,
Lyceum and School Exhibition Declaimer.
Comprising a Treatise on Elocution and Gesture, with Illustrations,
and a choice collection of pieces in Prose and Verse, and selec
Dialogues, specially adapted for School and Lyceum Exhibitions,
and Private Representations. l2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
PANORAMA OF THE OLD WORLD AND THE NEW;
Comprising a view of the present state of the Nations of the World,
their Names, Customs and Peculiarities, and their Political,
Moral, Social and Industrial Condition. Interspersed with
Historical Sketches and Anecdotes. By William Pinngck,
author of the Histories of England, Greece and Rome. Enlarged,
revised and embellished with several hundied Engravings,
including twenty-four finely colored Plates, from designs by
Croome, Devereux, and other distinguished artists. In one vol.
Octavo, over 6co pages, bound in embossed morocco, gilt back.
Price $2.75.
THRILLING INCIDENTS IN AMERICAN HISTORY.
Being a selection of the most important and interesting events which
have transpired since the discovery of America to the present
time. Compiled from the most approved authorities, new edition
enlarged. Splendidly illustrated, 1 2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
THE HOLY LAND, AND EGYPT, ARABIA PETRjEA, &o.
Travels in Egypt, Arabia Petrrea, and the Holy Land. By D.
Millard. A new and improved edition. Illustrated. 1 21110.,
cloth, Price $1.00.
HUNTING SCENES IN THE WILDS OF AFRICA.
Comprising the Thrilling Adventures of Cumming, Harris, and
other daring Hunters of Lions, Elephants, Giraffes, Buffaloes,
and other Animals. With Illustrations. 121110., cloth. Gilt
back. Price $1.00.
LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY O. G. EVANS. Z%
THE BATTLE FIELDS OF TFIE REVOLUTION.
Comprising descriptions of the Different Battles, Sieges, and other
Events of the War of Independence. Interspersed with Char-
acteristic Anecdotes. Illustrated with numerous Engravings,
and a fine Mezzotint Frontispiece. By Thomas Y. Rhoads.
Large 121110., cloth. Price $1.25.
PERILS AND PLEASURES OF A HUNTER'S LIFE.
With fine colored plates. Large i2mo., cloth. Price $1.25.
From the table of contents we take the following as samples or
the style and interest of the work :
Baiting for an Alligator — Morning among the Rocky Moun-
tains— Encounter with Shoshonees — A Grizzly Bear — Fight
and terrible result — Fire on the Mountains — Narrow Escape
—The Beaver Region — Trapping Beaver — A Journey and
Hunt through New Mexico — Start for South America — Hunt-
ing in the Forests of Brazil — Hunting on the Pampas — A Hunt-
ing Expedition into the interior of Africa.
PETERSON'S FAMILIAR SCIENCE;
Or, the Scientific Explanation of Common Things. Edited
by R. E. Peterson, Member of Academy of Natural Sciences
Philadelphia. The object of this book is to explain scientifi-
cally, but in the simplest language, over two thousand questions
of the commonest phenomena of life. Best edition, l2mo.
Embossed Backs. Price, $1.00.
THRILLING ADVENTURES AMONG THE INDIANS.
Bv John Frost, LL.D. Comprising the most remarkable Personal
' Narratives of Events in the Early Indian Wars, as well as of
Incidents in the recent Indian Hostilities in Mexico and Texas.
Illustrated with over 300 engravings, from designs by W. Croome,
and other distinguished artists. It contains over 500 pages.
l2mo., cloth. Gilt back, $1.25.
PIONEER LIFE IN THE WEST.
Comprising the Adventures of Boone, Kenton, Brady, Clarke, the
Whetzels, and others, in their Fierce Encounters with the
Indians. With Illustrations, 121110., cloth. Gilt back. Price
$i.oc.
X2 LIST OF BOOKS PUBLISHED BY O. G. EVANS.
McCULLOUGH'S TEXAN RANGERS.
The Scouting Expedition of McCullough's Texan Rangers, inclu-
ding Skirmishes with the Mexicans, and an accurate detail of
the Storming of Monterey, &c., with Anecdotes, Incidents and
Description of the Country, and Sketches of the lives of Hays,
McCullough and Walker. By S. C. Reid, Jr., of Louisiana, late
of the Texan Rangers. i2mo., cloth. Price $1.00.
THE DOOMED CHIEF.
Or, Two Hundred Years Ago. A Narrative of the Earliest
Border Warfare. By D. B. Thompson, author of " Gaut
Gurl^y," &c. l2ino., cloth. 81.00.
HUNTING SPORTS IN THE WEST.
Containing Adventures of the most celebrated Hunters and Trap-
pers of the West. Illustrated with new designs, izmo., cloth.
$1.00.
GAUT GURLEY ;
Or, the Trappers of Umbagog. A Tale of Border Life. By D-
B. Thompson, author of " The Rangers ; or, the Toiy's Daugh-
ter," " Green Mountain Boys," &c. i2mo., cloth. Price $ I 00.
THE RECOLLECTIONS OF A SOUTHERN MATRON.
By Mrs. Caroline Gilman, of South Carolina. l2mo., cloth.
Price $1.00.
"This volume is one of those books which are read by all classes at all
stages of life, with an interest which looses nothing by change or circum-
stances."
THE ENCHANTED BEAUTY.
And other Tales and Essays. By Dr. Wm. Elder. i2mo..
cloth. Price S^i.oo.
"Th'.s is a volume of beautiful and onjrent- essays, virtuous in motive, simple
in expression, pertinent and admirable in logic, and glorious in conclusion
and climax."
THE CHILD'S FAIRY BOOK.
By Spencer W. Cone. Containing a choice collection of beauti-
ful Fairy Tales. Illustrated with Ten Beautiful Engravings,
Spiendidh Colored. 1 21110., cloth. Price $1.00.
THE LIBRARY
UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA
U1MV11B.M1I Ur LALlfUKINJA L1UKAKY
Los Angeles
This book is DUE on the last date stamped below.
2 3 195C
AUG 4 -I95i
^•11 1951
OV 141951|
to-tmc
sww^^l'^
tft=UKi- tv
i
SEP29 ?975
L9 — 15m-10,'48 (B103
JUN 2 3 1975
81975
PIVT
3ECD LD-URl'
'SSIl. M«05'89
199(1
viig .jii^v
3 115801333 1458
t
PLEASE DO NOT REMOVE
THIS BOOK CARD™
^UIBRASYQt
^/OJITVDJO^
University Research Library
'■W FACILITY
•?|||
II
1
o
£
>
r
r
z
c
*
a
-L
33
1
1
1
f\j
f~~
' r-